<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class="box">
<h1>THE CURVED <br/>BLADES</h1>
<p class="center"><span class="large">By CAROLYN WELLS</span>
<br/><span class="small"><i>Author of “A Chain of Evidence,” “The Gold Bag,” “The Clue,” “The White Alley,” Etc.</i></span></p>
<p class="center"><span class="smaller"><i>WITH A FRONTISPIECE IN COLOR BY</i></span>
<br/><span class="small">GAYLE HOSKINS</span></p>
<div class="fig"> id="logo"><ANTIMG src="images/logo.jpg" alt="George H. Doran Logo" width-obs="145" height-obs="144" /></div>
<p class="center">PHILADELPHIA AND LONDON
<br/>J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY
<br/>1916</p>
<p class="center"><span class="smaller">COPYRIGHT, 1916, BY FRANK A. MUNSEY COMPANY
<br/>COPYRIGHT, 1916, BY J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY
<br/>PUBLISHED FEBRUARY, 1916</span></p>
<p class="center"><span class="smaller">PRINTED BY J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY
<br/>AT THE WASHINGTON SQUARE PRESS
<br/>PHILADELPHIA, U. S. A.</span></p>
</div>
<h2>CONTENTS</h2>
<dt class="jr"><span class="jl"><span class="small">CHAPTER</span></span> <span class="small">PAGE</span>
<br/><SPAN href="#c1"><span class="cn">I. </span><span class="sc">Miss Lucy Carrington</span></SPAN> 7
<br/><SPAN href="#c2"><span class="cn">II. </span><span class="sc">A Clash of Tongues</span></SPAN> 21
<br/><SPAN href="#c3"><span class="cn">III. </span><span class="sc">The Tragedy</span></SPAN> 36
<br/><SPAN href="#c4"><span class="cn">IV. </span><span class="sc">A Paper Snake</span></SPAN> 49
<br/><SPAN href="#c5"><span class="cn">V. </span><span class="sc">A Man’s Glove</span></SPAN> 61
<br/><SPAN href="#c6"><span class="cn">VI. </span><span class="sc">A Neighbor’s Call</span></SPAN> 75
<br/><SPAN href="#c7"><span class="cn">VII. </span><span class="sc">The Inquest</span></SPAN> 90
<br/><SPAN href="#c8"><span class="cn">VIII. </span><span class="sc">Anita’s Story</span></SPAN> 104
<br/><SPAN href="#c9"><span class="cn">IX. </span><span class="sc">Further Testimony</span></SPAN> 117
<br/><SPAN href="#c10"><span class="cn">X. </span><span class="sc">Bizarre Clues</span></SPAN> 130
<br/><SPAN href="#c11"><span class="cn">XI. </span><span class="sc">Fleming Stone</span></SPAN> 144
<br/><SPAN href="#c12"><span class="cn">XII. </span><span class="sc">Estelle’s Story</span></SPAN> 156
<br/><SPAN href="#c13"><span class="cn">XIII. </span><span class="sc">Bates, the Burglar</span></SPAN> 169
<br/><SPAN href="#c14"><span class="cn">XIV. </span><span class="sc">Who Gave the Poison</span></SPAN> 182
<br/><SPAN href="#c15"><span class="cn">XV. </span><span class="sc">Pauline’s Purchase</span></SPAN> 195
<br/><SPAN href="#c16"><span class="cn">XVI. </span><span class="sc">The Two Girls</span></SPAN> 210
<br/><SPAN href="#c17"><span class="cn">XVII. </span><span class="sc">The Overheard Conversation</span></SPAN> 222
<br/><SPAN href="#c18"><span class="cn">XVIII. </span><span class="sc">Fled!</span></SPAN> 235
<br/><SPAN href="#c19"><span class="cn">XIX. </span><span class="sc">Letters from the Fugitive</span></SPAN> 251
<br/><SPAN href="#c20"><span class="cn">XX. </span><span class="sc">In the Boudoir</span></SPAN> 261
<br/><SPAN href="#c21"><span class="cn">XXI. </span><span class="sc">Fleming Stone’s Theory</span></SPAN> 274
<br/><SPAN href="#c22"><span class="cn">XXII. </span><span class="sc">Pauline in Cairo</span></SPAN> 289
<br/><SPAN href="#c23"><span class="cn">XXIII. </span><span class="sc">Two Wills</span></SPAN> 302
<br/><SPAN href="#c24"><span class="cn">XXIV. </span><span class="sc">Confession</span></SPAN> 314
<div class="pb" id="Page_7">[7]</div>
<h1 title="">THE CURVED BLADES</h1>
<h2 id="c1"><span class="small">I</span> <br/>MISS LUCY CARRINGTON</h2>
<p>“Garden Steps” was one of the show-places
of Merivale Park, Long Island. In summer it
was an enchanting spot, and the dazzling white
marble steps which led to the sunken gardens
justified their right to give the place its name.
Other stone steps gave on terraces and flower
banks, others still led to the Italian landscape
gardens, and a few rustic steps of a wooden
stile transported one to an old-fashioned garden,
whose larkspur and Canterbury bells were the
finest of their sort.</p>
<p>The house seemed an integral part of this
setting. Its wide verandahs, or more often loggias,
were so lavishly furnished with flowering
plants, its windows so boxed with them, that the
whole effect was that of a marvellously well-planned
horticultural exhibition.</p>
<p>But all this was of the summer. In winter—for
it was an all-round-the-year home—only the
varied and extraordinary collection of evergreens
shared with the steps the honor of making
picturesque and beautiful the view from the
house windows.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_8">[8]</div>
<p>And now, in January, one of the all too seldom
enjoyed white snow storms had glorified the
whole estate. Wind-swept drifts half hid, half
disclosed the curving marble balustrades, and
turned the steps to snowy fairyland flights.</p>
<p>And, for it was night, a cold, dear, perfect
winter night, a supercilious moon looked down,
a little haughtily and condescended to illumine
the scene in stunning, if a bit theatric, fashion.</p>
<p>“Ripping picture, eh?” said Gray Haviland,
as he held back the heavy curtain for the golden-haired
young woman at his side to look out.</p>
<p>“Oh, isn’t it a wonderful sight!” And
as Anita Frayne took a step forward, toward
the casement, Haviland let the curtain fall behind
him and the two were alone in the deep embrasure
of the wide bay-window.</p>
<p>“Not nearly such a wonderful sight as you
are!” Haviland swung her round to face him,
and stood gazing at the pretty, doll-like face
that half laughed, half frowned into his own.</p>
<p>“Me! I’m not like a moonlit landscape!”</p>
<p>“No, you’re just a golden morsel of summer
sunshine——” Haviland’s eulogy was interrupted
by a petulant voice calling shrilly:</p>
<p>“Where are you two? I hear you talking;
come on. I’m waiting.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_9">[9]</div>
<p>“Oh, Lord! come on,” and, holding the curtain
aside, he let Anita pass and then followed
her.</p>
<p>“Here we are, Cousin Lucy, all ready for
the fray. Good evening, Count.”</p>
<p>Count Charlier bowed Frenchily, and Anita
gave him the bright, flashing smile that she kept
on hand for mankind in general, and which was
quite different from that she used on special
occasions or for special friends.</p>
<p>Annoyed at the duration of this delaying
smile, Miss Lucy Carrington tapped impatiently
on the bridge table, and looked her impatience
most unmistakably.</p>
<p>Mistress of Garden Steps, wealthy, well-born,
of assured social position, capable and efficient,
Miss Carrington lacked the one gift of Fate for
which she would have bartered all else. She
was not beautiful, and had not even enough pretension
to good looks to think herself beautiful.
Plain features, graying hair—dyed red—big,
prominent light-blue eyes, and a pasty, pudgy
complexion left no hope for the miracles worked
by beauty doctors to avail in her case. Her
figure was short and dumpy, the despair of her
staymakers, and her taste in dress ran to the
extremes in coloring and fashion.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_10">[10]</div>
<p>Passionately fond of all beauty, Miss Carrington
felt keenly her own lack of it, and to this
lack she attributed the fact that she was a
spinster. Those who knew her felt there might
be other reasons why her suitors had been few,
but, as a matter of fact, the acidity of her disposition
was a direct result of her disappointed,
loveless life, and even yet, though nearing fifty,
Miss Lucy Carrington had by no means laid
aside all thoughts of matrimonial adventure.</p>
<p>Heiress to immense wealth, there had been
fortune-seekers who asked her hand, but Lucy
Carrington would none of these. Aristocratic
and high-minded, she had unerring perception
of motives, and the men who had been willing to
marry her face as well as her fortune had been
of such unworth that the lady scorned them.</p>
<p>But now, looming on her hopes’ horizon was
a welcome possibility. Count Henri Charlier,
a visitor of a neighbor, seemingly admired the
mistress of Garden Steps and had fallen into the
habit of frequent calling. Courteous and polished
of manner, he flattered Miss Carrington
in such wise that his attitude was acceptable if
not indubitably sincere. Her closest scrutiny
and most challenging provocation failed to surprise
any admission of her lack of perfection in
his eyes, and his splendid physique and brilliant
mind commanded her complete approval and
admiration. There had been hints that his title
could not be read entirely clear, but this was not
sufficient to condemn him in Miss Carrington’s
eyes.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_11">[11]</div>
<p>To be sure, the Count had as yet said no word
that could be construed as of definite intention,
but there had been certain signs, deemed portentous
by the willing mind of the lady in
question.</p>
<p>Bridge was Miss Carrington’s favorite diversion,
and, as the Count also enjoyed it, frequent
evenings were devoted to the game.</p>
<p>It was, perhaps, a mistake that Miss Carrington
should have allowed this, for her temper,
always uncertain, lost all restraint when she
suffered ill-luck at cards. A poor hand always
brought down violent objurgation on the head of
her partner and sarcastic comment or criticism
on her adversaries. These exhibitions of wrath
were not good policy if she wished to charm the
French visitor, but, as he invariably kept his
own temper, his irate hostess made little effort
to curb hers.</p>
<p>“What are you doing, Anita?” cried Miss
Carrington, petulantly, as they settled themselves
at the table. “You know I always play
with the blue cards, and you are dealing them!”</p>
<p>“Sure enough! Pardon me, Lady Lucy, I
will take the red ones.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_12">[12]</div>
<p>“Then, pray, wait till I make them up. There.
No, let the Count cut them! Have you no notion
of bridge rules? You are quite the most inattentive
player! Will you kindly concentrate on
the game?”</p>
<p>“Yes, indeed,” and Anita Frayne smiled as
she deftly dealt the red cards. “I hope you
have a good hand.”</p>
<p>“You hope I have a good hand! A strange
idea for an adversary!”</p>
<p>“But I know you like to win,” and Miss
Frayne hastily gathered up her own cards.</p>
<p>“I do not like to have you want me to win!
That’s babyish. I like to win by superior skill,
not merely by lucky cards!”</p>
<p>This was an awful whopper, and all at the
table knew it, but it was ignored and the game
began.</p>
<p>Miss Carrington—Lady Lucy, as she liked to
be called—did not hold good hands. On the contrary,
she had a run of bad luck that made her
more and more irate with each hand dealt. Miss
Frayne, who was her <i>protégée</i> and social secretary,
watched with growing apprehension the
red spots that appeared in Miss Carrington’s
cheeks, infallible danger signals of an impending
outbreak.</p>
<p>It came.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_13">[13]</div>
<p>“Another handful of blanks!” Miss Carrington
exclaimed, angrily, and flung the offending
thirteen cards across the wide room.</p>
<p>“There now, Cousin Lucy,” said Gray Haviland,
determined to keep the peace if possible,
“that was a clever idea! It will certainly change
your luck! I’ll collect the pasteboards, and we’ll
start fresh.”</p>
<p>Easily, the big, good-looking young chap
sauntered across the room and gathered up the
cards, chatting meanwhile. “You don’t lose
your deal, you know; so try again, Cousin Lucy,
and good luck to you!”</p>
<p>In angry silence Miss Carrington dealt
again, and examined her hand. “Nothing
above a nine spot!” she declared, throwing them,
backs up, on the table.</p>
<p>“Too bad!” murmured Miss Frayne, carelessly
picking up the hand. “Why, you didn’t
look closely! Here’s an ace and two queens
and——”</p>
<p>“They’re nothing! How dare you dispute
my word? I say the hand is worthless!” She
fairly snatched the cards from the girl and
turned them face down again.</p>
<p>“But mad’moiselle,” began the Count, “if
you have an ace and two queens, I could have
played a no-trump hand grand,—ah, splendid!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_14">[14]</div>
<p>“Yes, <i>you</i> could have played it! You want
to play all the open hands! You want me to
sit here a dummy, a figure-head, every time!”</p>
<p>“Now, now, Lady Lucy——” and Anita
Frayne laughed pleasantly.</p>
<p>“Be quiet! You’re worse yet! You want
to deal me good hands to humor me! I believe
you would cheat to do it! I don’t want good
cards that way!”</p>
<p>“Ah,” begged the Count, seeing Anita flush,
“do not tell the young lady she cheats! Do not
do that!”</p>
<p>“I’ll tell her what I choose! Gray, say something!
You sit there like a mummy, while these
people are insulting me right and left! Tell
Anita that I am right in not wishing her to deal
me good cards purposely.”</p>
<p>“But she didn’t,” declared Haviland; “you
know she didn’t. Why, she couldn’t, even if
she wanted to!”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, she could!” and Miss Carrington
gave a disagreeable sneer. “She’s quite clever
enough for any deceit or treachery.”</p>
<p>“Stop, Cousin Lucy! I can’t let you talk so
about Miss Frayne in my presence!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_15">[15]</div>
<p>“Oh, you can’t, can’t you? And, pray, what
right have you to defend her? Go away, both
of you! I’ll play with you no longer. Go away
and send Pauline and Mr. Illsley in here. They,
at least, will play fair.”</p>
<p>Anita Frayne rose without a word. Haviland
rose too, but talking volubly. “Let up,
Cousin Lucy,” he said sternly. “You’ve no
right to treat Miss Frayne so. You ought to
apologize to her for such rudeness.”</p>
<p>“Apologize!” Miss Carrington fairly
shrieked; “she’ll do the apologizing, and you,
too, my foolish young cousin. You little know
what’s going to happen to me! To-morrow you
may sing another song!”</p>
<p>Haviland looked at her in astonishment; the
Count, thoughtfully. The same idea was in
both their minds. Could she mean that she was
expecting the Count to propose to her that
evening?</p>
<p>“Nothing nice can happen to you unless you
learn to control that temper of yours,” and
Haviland swung away after Anita.</p>
<p>He found her in the next room, nestled in
the corner of a big davenport, weeping into a
sympathetic sofa-cushion.</p>
<p>“Go and find the others,” she whispered, as
he came near her. “Make them go and play
with her!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_16">[16]</div>
<p>Obediently, Haviland went. In the glassed
sun-parlor he found Pauline Stuart, Miss Carrington’s
niece, and Stephen Illsley, one of the
most favored of Pauline’s many suitors.</p>
<p>“For goodness’ sake, people,” he began,
“do go and play bridge with the Lady of the
Manor! She’s in a peach of a fury, and you’ll
have to take your life in your hands, but <i>go</i>!”</p>
<p>“I won’t,” said Pauline, bluntly; “It’s Anita’s
turn to-night. She said she’d do it.”</p>
<p>“She did! But she came off second best,
and she’s weeping buckets on the best Empire
embroidery sofa-cushions! I’m going to comfort
her, but you must go and keep the gentle
Lucy from pulling the house down about our
ears! She’s sure queering herself with his nibs!
He can’t admire her sweet, flower-like soul after
this night’s exhibition.”</p>
<p>“I don’t want to go a bit, but I suppose we’ll
have to,” and Pauline smiled at her guest.</p>
<p>“Oh, go on,” said Haviland, as he turned to
leave them; “and, for Heaven’s sake, give her all
the good cards. Can you manage that, Illsley?”</p>
<p>“I am afraid not. Her eyes are too sharp.”</p>
<p>“Well, if her luck stays bad, get her to play
mumble-peg or something, instead of bridge.”</p>
<p>Haviland disappeared and Pauline rose unwillingly.
“I do so hate to play with Aunt
Lucy,” she said, “but it must be done. Are you
willing to sacrifice yourself?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_17">[17]</div>
<p>“For you? Always!” And the two went
to the cardroom.</p>
<p>Pauline Stuart, tall, dark, graceful, was a striking-looking
girl. Only twenty-four, she carried
herself with the dignity and poise of a duchess,
and her heavy, dark brows gave her face an expression
of strength and will-power that contrasted
forcibly with the delicate Dresden china
beauty of Anita Frayne. The two girls were not
especially friendly, though never definitely at
odds. Anita was envious of the more fortunate
Pauline. The latter, Miss Carrington’s niece,
would inherit a goodly part of her aunt’s large
fortune, while the humble position of the secretary
commanded only a liberal, not munificent,
salary.</p>
<p>The girls, however, were at one in their
dread of Miss Lucy’s ebullitions of temper and
their resentment of the biting sarcasms and angry
diatribes she flung at them in her frequent
spasms of fury.</p>
<p>Illsley, a well-set-up chap of good address,
followed Pauline into her aunt’s presence.</p>
<p>“You waited long enough,” grumbled Miss
Carrington. “Sit down. It’s your deal now,
Pauline.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_18">[18]</div>
<p>Matters went well for a time. Miss Lucy
held good cards, and once or twice she triumphed
through a mistake of her adversaries, which she
fortunately did not discover was made on purpose.</p>
<p>Count Charlier’s little bright black eyes
darted inquiringly from aunt to niece, but he
made no comment. All four played well, and
when at last Miss Carrington made a grand
slam her joy was effervescent.</p>
<p>“Good play,” she flattered herself. “You
must admit, Count, that it was clever of me to
take that difficult <i>finesse</i> just at that critical
point.”</p>
<p>“Clever indeed, mademoiselle. You have the
analytical mind; you should have been a diplomat.
Also, Fortune favors you. You are beloved
of the fickle goddess.”</p>
<p>“Let us hope so,” and for a moment Miss
Carrington looked grave.</p>
<p>And then, with the perversity of that same
goddess, the card luck changed. Pauline and
Illsley held all the high cards, Miss Lucy and
the Count only the low ones.</p>
<p>Storm signals showed. Whiter grew the
stern, set face; tighter drew the thin, wide lips;
and rigid muscles set themselves in the angry,
swelling throat. Then, as she scanned a hand
of cards, all below the ten, again they went in a
shower across the room, and she cried, angrily:
“A Yarborough!” reverting to the old-fashioned
term.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_19">[19]</div>
<p>“Never mind, Aunt Lucy,” and Pauline tried
to laugh it off; “this is not your lucky night.
Let’s give up bridge for to-night. Let’s have
some music.”</p>
<p>“Yes! because you love music and hate
bridge! It makes no difference what <i>I</i> want.
My wishes are never considered. You and Anita
are just alike! Selfish, ungrateful, caring for
nothing but your own pleasure. Mr. Illsley,
don’t you think young girls should pay some
slight attention to the wishes of one who does
everything for them? Where would either of
them be but for me? Are you not sorry for me?”</p>
<p>“Why,—I—you must excuse me, I am not
sure I understand——”</p>
<p>“Yes, you understand, perfectly well. You
know the girls slight me and snub me every
chance they get. But it will not always be thus.
To-morrow——”</p>
<p>“Come, Aunt Lucy,” pleaded Pauline, “let
us have some music. You know there are some
new records, just arrived to-day. Let us hear
them.”</p>
<p>“Are there new records? Did you get the
ones I wanted?”</p>
<p>“Some of them. We couldn’t get them all.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_20">[20]</div>
<p>“Oh, no, of course not! But if <i>you</i> had
wanted certain records they would have been
found!”</p>
<p>“But, Auntie Lucy, we couldn’t get them if
they aren’t made, could we? Gray tried his
best.”</p>
<p>“Oh, tried his best! He forgot to ask for
them, so he says he ‘tried his best,’ to excuse his
carelessness. If Anita had wanted them——”</p>
<p>The starting of the music drowned further
flow of the lady’s grievances.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_21">[21]</div>
<h2 id="c2"><span class="small">II</span> <br/>A CLASH OF TONGUES</h2>
<p>True to its reputation for calming the impulses
of the turbulent spirit, the music soothed
Miss Carrington’s ruffled temper, and she waxed
amiable and even gay. Enthroned on her favorite
red velvet chair, resplendent in an elaborately
decorated gown of sapphire blue satin,
with her bright auburn locks piled high and
topped by an enormous comb of carved tortoise-shell,
she dominated the little group and gave
orders that must be obeyed.</p>
<p>She wore, among other jewels, a magnificent
rope of pearls. So remarkable were these, that
the Count, who had never seen them before, ventured
to refer to them.</p>
<p>“Yes,” agreed Miss Carrington, “they are
wonderful. Practically priceless, I assure you.
It took my agent years to collect them.”</p>
<p>“And you grace an informal home evening
with these regal gems?”</p>
<p>“Not usually, no. But you know, Count
Charlier, pearls must be worn frequently to preserve
their lustre. Laid away a long time, they
grow dead and dull-looking.”</p>
<p>“You keep them here? Is it safe, think
you?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_22">[22]</div>
<p>“I don’t keep them here all the time. Indeed,
I got these from the Safe Deposit only this morning.
I shall return them there in a few days.
While here, I shall wear them all I can to liven
them up.”</p>
<p>“You brought a lot of your other jewels,
didn’t you, Aunt Lucy?” said Pauline, casually;
“why did you? Are you going to a ball?”</p>
<p>“No: I wish to—to look them over and plan
to have some reset.”</p>
<p>“But are they safe?” inquired the Count
again; “do you not fear thieves?”</p>
<p>“No, we never have such things as robbery in
Merivale Park. It is a quiet, well-behaved neighborhood.”</p>
<p>“But you have a safe?” went on the Count;
“you take at least that precaution?”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, I have a safe in my boudoir. There
is really no danger. Count Charlier, would you
like to hear me sing? Find one of my records,
Gray.”</p>
<p>Miss Carrington’s singing voice had been a
fine one and was still fair. She sometimes
amused herself by making records for her phonograph,
and Gray Haviland managed the mechanical
part of it.</p>
<p>“Which one, Lady Lucy?” he asked, as he
rummaged in the record cabinet.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_23">[23]</div>
<p>“Any of those pretty love songs,” and Miss
Carrington glanced coyly at the Count.</p>
<p>“Here’s a fine one,” and Haviland placed a
disk in the machine.</p>
<p>“Listen,” he said, smiling; “don’t miss the
introduction.”</p>
<p>The needle touched the record, and Miss
Lucy’s laugh rang out, so clear and true, it was
difficult to believe it was a recorded laugh and
not a sound from the lady herself. Then the
recorded voice said: “This song is one of Carr’s
favorites, I’ll sing it for him.” And then, with
only a few seconds’ interval, Miss Carrington’s
voice sang, “Believe me, if all those endearing
young charms.”</p>
<p>It was well sung, and a perfect record, so that
the incident of the singer listening to her own
voice was interesting in itself.</p>
<p>“Capital!” applauded the Count, as it was
finished. “It is indeed pleasant to preserve
one’s songs thus. May I not some time record
my own amateur attempt?”</p>
<p>“Delighted to have you, Count,” said Haviland,
cordially. “Come over some morning, and
we’ll do up a lot of records.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_24">[24]</div>
<p>“Since when have you been master here,
Gray?” said Miss Lucy, with fine scorn. “I
will give the invitations to my own house, if you
please! Count Charlier, if you will come to-morrow
afternoon I will instruct Mr. Haviland
to make the records.”</p>
<p>It was not so much the words as the manner
of their utterance that was offensive, and Haviland
set his lips in stifled anger. It was not at
all unusual, this sort of rebuff, but he could not
endure it as patiently as the two girls did. Haviland
was a second cousin of Miss Carrington,
and, while he lived with her in the capacity of a
business secretary and general man of affairs,
the post was a sinecure, for the services of her
lawyer and of her social secretary left little for
Haviland to do. His salary was a generous one
and he was substantially remembered in her will,
but he sometimes thought the annoying and irritating
fleers he had to accept smilingly, were
worth more than he was receiving. He was
continually made to feel himself a dependent and
an inferior.</p>
<p>These trials also fell to the lot of the two
girls. Pauline, although her aunt’s heiress to
the extent of half the fortune, the other half to go
to an absent cousin, was by no means treated as
an equal of Miss Carrington herself. It seemed
to give the elder lady delight to domineer over
her niece and in every possible way make her life
uneasy and uncomfortable. As to the social secretary,
Miss Frayne, she was scolded for everything
she did, right or wrong.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_25">[25]</div>
<p>Often had the three young people declared
intentions of leaving Garden Steps, but so far
none of them had made good the threat.</p>
<p>Vanity was the key-note of Lucy Carrington’s
nature, and, knowing this, they could, if
they chose, keep her fairly sweet-tempered by
inordinate flattery often administered. This
proceeding hurt their self-respect, jarred their
tempers, and galled their very souls, but it was
that or dismissal, and thus far they had stayed.
Matters were nearing a crisis, however, and
Haviland’s patience was so sorely strained that
he was secretly looking for another position.
Anita Frayne, whose pretty blonde doll-face belied
a very fiery disposition, was on the verge of
a serious break with her employer, and Pauline
Stuart continually assured herself that she could
not go on this way.</p>
<p>Pauline was the orphaned daughter of Lucy’s
sister, and had lived with her aunt for many
years. Carrington Loria, the son of another
sister, was engaged in antiquarian research in
Egypt, where he had been since his graduation
as an engineer. He, too, was an orphan and had
lived with Lucy in his younger days, and he and
Pauline were equal heirs to their aunt’s wealth.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_26">[26]</div>
<p>The father of the three Carrington sisters,
having become angered at his two daughters
who married against his wishes, had left his entire
fortune to Lucy, his only remaining child.
Thus her niece and nephew were her only direct
heirs, and, save for some comparatively small
bequests, the Carrington estate would eventually
be theirs.</p>
<p>Pauline well knew that if she left her aunt’s
roof it meant complete disinheritance, for Lucy
Carrington was proud of her beautiful niece,
and, too, was fond of her in her own way. But
the ungovernable temper of the lady made her
home an almost unbearable abiding-place.</p>
<p>Since childhood years Carrington Loria had
lived there only during his college vacations;
but had been back occasionally for short visits
from his now permanent Egyptian occupation.
He had always come laden with gifts of Oriental
products, and the rooms at Garden Steps showed
many rare specimens of cunning handiwork and
rich fabrics and embroideries.</p>
<p>To break the awkward pause that followed
Miss Carrington’s rude speech to Gray Haviland,
Pauline picked up an antique scarab from
a side table and drew the Count’s attention to its
inscription.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_27">[27]</div>
<p>He expressed a polite interest, but cast furtive
glances at his hostess, as if afraid of a
further outbreak.</p>
<p>Nor were his fears unjustified. Miss Carrington
administered a scathing reproach to
Pauline for intruding herself upon the Count’s
attention, and bade her put aside the scarab and
hold her tongue.</p>
<p>“Don’t speak to me like that, Aunt Lucy; I
am not a child!” And Pauline, unable to control
herself longer, faced her angry aunt with
an air of righteous wrath.</p>
<p>“I’ll speak to you as I choose, miss! It is
for you to mend your tone in addressing me! If
you don’t, you may have cause to regret it.
Count Charlier came here to see me, and I refuse
to countenance your clumsy attempts to engage
his interest in your silly babble!”</p>
<p>“But—I insist—” stammered the greatly
embarrassed Count, “allow me, madame, let me
say, I call on you all—all——”</p>
<p>“Nothing of the sort!” declared Miss Lucy;
“you came, Count, to play bridge with us. Our
opponents behaved so rudely and played so
badly it was impossible for us to continue the
game. Nor can we enjoy music in this inharmonious
atmosphere. Let us stroll in the conservatory,
you and I.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_28">[28]</div>
<p>She rose, trailing her heavy silks and flashing
her sparkling jewels, and the Count, a little
hesitatingly, followed her. They crossed the
great hall, and, going through a reception room
and the delightful sun-parlor, came to the warm,
heavily-scented conservatory.</p>
<p>“Poor old Charlier!” said Haviland, as the
pair disappeared; “he’s in for it now! Do you
suppose the palms and orchids will bring him up
to the scratch? ‘Nita, I’ll bet you a box of gloves
against a box of simple little cigarettes that he
doesn’t propose to the lady to-night?”</p>
<p>“Done!” cried Miss Frayne, who was sparkling
again, now that the dread presence was removed.
“I doubt he can help himself. She has
him at her mercy. And he’s too good-mannered
to disappoint her wish.”</p>
<p>“He’ll propose,” said Pauline, with an air
of conviction. “He’s a typical fortune-hunter,
that man. Indeed, I am not sure he’s a Count
at all. Do you know, Mr. Illsley?”</p>
<p>“I know almost nothing of the man, save that
he’s a guest of the Frothinghams. That’s not
entirely in his favor, I think.”</p>
<p>“Right you are!” agreed Haviland. “Those
people are,—well, they’re to be queried. But I
say, Polly, if the two do hit it off, it’s grinding
poverty for us, eh?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_29">[29]</div>
<p>“It may be a blessed relief, Gray. She’ll
give us something, of course, and send us away
from here. I, for one, shouldn’t be sorry to go.
She is getting too impossible!”</p>
<p>“She is!” put in Anita; “every day she
pounds us worse! I’d like to kill her!”</p>
<p>The fierce words and would-be menacing
glance of the little blonde beauty were about as
convincing as a kitten declaring himself a war
lord, and even the stately Pauline smiled at the
picture.</p>
<p>“She ought to be killed,” declared Haviland,
“and I say this dispassionately. I wouldn’t do
it, because killing is not in my line, but the eternal
fitness of things requires her removal to another
sphere of usefulness. She makes life a
burden to three perfectly good people, and some
several servants. Not one would mourn her,
and——”</p>
<p>“Oh, stop, Gray!” cried Pauline; “don’t talk
in that strain! Don’t listen to him, Mr. Illsley.
He often says such things, but he doesn’t mean
them. Mr. Haviland loves to talk at random, to
make a sensational hearing.”</p>
<p>“Nothing of the sort, Polly. I do mean it.
Lucy Carrington is a misery dispenser, and such
are not wanted in this nice little old world.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_30">[30]</div>
<p>“But perhaps,” Pauline looked thoughtful,
“the fault is in us. We don’t like her, and so
we see nothing good in what she does. Now,
Carrington Loria adores her. She had a letter
from him to-day——”</p>
<p>“Yes, Loria adores her!” interrupted Haviland,
“because he doesn’t live with her! She
sends him love-letters and money, and he doesn’t
know the everlasting torture of living under her
roof, year in and year out! But he caught on
a little the last time he was here. He said,—well,
in his quaint Oriental fashion, he said,
‘Gee! she’s the limit!’ that’s what he said.”</p>
<p>“Well, she is,” pouted Anita. “I can’t
do a thing to suit her. To-day I wrote a letter
over six times before she was satisfied. And
every change she wanted made was so foolish
she wanted it changed back again. She nearly
drove me crazy!”</p>
<p>“But I have to put up with her morning, noon,
and night,” sighed Pauline. “You have your
hours off, Anita, but I never do. She even
wakens me in the night to read to her, or to
help her plan her new gowns.”</p>
<p>“It is awfully hard for you,” began Mr. Illsley,
and then all stopped short, for the object of
their discussion returned to the room.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_31">[31]</div>
<p>It was plain to be seen Miss Carrington was
in a state of suppressed excitement. She
giggled almost hysterically, and tapped the
Count playfully on the arm with her fan, as she
bade him say good-night and go.</p>
<p>The interested ones watching her could not
learn whether the Count had declared himself or
not. The presumption was negative, for, had
he done so, surely Miss Carrington would have
told the good news.</p>
<p>Charlier himself was distinctly non-committal.
Debonair as always, he made his adieux,
no more demonstrative to his hostess than to the
others, and went away. Illsley followed, and
the household dispersed. The clock struck midnight
as the ladies went upstairs.</p>
<p>Following custom, they all three went to Miss
Lucy’s boudoir. It was by way of reporting for
to-morrow’s orders, and was a duty never neglected.</p>
<p>The exquisite apartment, from which opened
the bedroom and bath, was softly lighted and
fragrant with flowers.</p>
<p>“How do you like Count Henri Charlier?”
Miss Carrington quickly demanded of her
satellites.</p>
<p>“Charming,” said the voluble Anita. “Just
a typical French nobleman, isn’t he? And how
he adores our Lady Lucy!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_32">[32]</div>
<p>The whole speech rang false, but the vanity
of the lady addressed swallowed it as truest sincerity.
“Yes,” she returned, “he is infatuated,
I have reason to think. But—we shall see what
we shall see! Curb your impatience, girls!
You shall know all in due time.”</p>
<p>“Can I do anything for you, Auntie, to-night
or to-morrow?” asked Pauline, and, though she
tried to speak with enthusiasm, her tone did
sound perfunctory.</p>
<p>“Not if you offer in that manner,” and Miss
Carrington looked at her niece coldly. “One
would think, Pauline, that it must be an irksome
task to do the smallest favor for your aunt and
benefactor! Do you feel no pleasure in doing
what trifles you can for one who does everything
for you?”</p>
<p>“I would feel a pleasure, Aunt Lucy, if you
were kinder to me. But——”</p>
<p>“Kinder!” shrieked her aunt; “kinder!
Girl, have you taken leave of your senses? I
give you a home, fine dresses, money, everything
you can want, and you ask me to be kinder to
you! Go! never let me see you again, after that
speech!”</p>
<p>“Oh, auntie, don’t! I didn’t mean——”</p>
<p>“You didn’t mean to exasperate me beyond
endurance? No, of course you meant to stop
short of that! But you have done it. I mean
this, Pauline: to-morrow you go elsewhere to
live. No longer will I give a home to such a
monster of ingratitude!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_33">[33]</div>
<p>“But, Miss Carrington”—and Anita
Frayne’s soft voice implored gently——“don’t
be hasty. Pauline didn’t mean——”</p>
<p>“What!” and Lucy Carrington turned on
her, “you take her part? Then you go, too! I
want no ingrates here. Leave me, both of you.
This night is your last beneath this roof! You
are two unworthy girls, to scorn and slight the
hand that has fed and clothed you and given you
luxury and comfort such as you will never see
again! Go, I’ve done with you! Send me
Estelle. She, at least, has some small affection
for me.”</p>
<p>The two girls left the room. The scene was
not without precedent. Before this they had
been ordered to leave the house forever, but always
forgiveness and reinstatement had followed.
This time, however, the Lady Lucy had
been rather more in earnest, and the girls looked
at each other uncertainly as they turned toward
their rooms.</p>
<p>Anita summoned Estelle, the French maid,
and then told her to hasten immediately to Miss
Carrington.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_34">[34]</div>
<p>“Don’t undress me,” said the mistress as the
maid appeared; “I’m not retiring at once. Get
me out of this gown and give me a negligée and
slippers.”</p>
<p>“Yes, mademoiselle,” and Estelle deftly
obeyed orders and brought a white boudoir gown
edged with swans-down.</p>
<p>“Not that!” cried Miss Carrington. “Bring
the gold-embroidered one,—the Oriental.”</p>
<p>“Ah, the green one, from Monsieur Loria?”</p>
<p>“Yes, the one my nephew sent me at Christmas
time. My, but it’s handsome, isn’t it,
Estelle?”</p>
<p>“Gorgeous!” declared the maid, and she
spoke truly. Young Loria knew his aunt’s taste,
and he had sent her a typical Egyptian robe, of
pale green silk, heavy with gold embroideries.
In it Miss Carrington looked like one attired for
a masquerade.</p>
<p>“Shall I take down mademoiselle’s hair?”
asked Estelle, lingering.</p>
<p>“No. I want to be alone. I will read
awhile. You need not return. I will do for myself.”</p>
<p>“There is your glass of milk, ma’mzelle, on
the bed-table.”</p>
<p>“Silly! I suppose I can see it for myself.”</p>
<p>“Yes, ma’am. And you will have your tea at
eight in the morning?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_35">[35]</div>
<p>“Of course, my tea at eight. As always. You
might remember that much yourself. But nobody
remembers things for <i>my</i> comfort.”</p>
<p>“Pardon, but sometimes it is eight, and,
again, it must be half-past.”</p>
<p>“Eight! Now, will you go? You are most
exasperating! Why do you stand there like a
gibbering idiot?”</p>
<p>“The jewels, mademoiselle; the pearls?
Shall I not put them in safety?”</p>
<p>“No! I will put them in the safe myself.
Where is the key?”</p>
<p>“There, mademoiselle, on your dresser. But
if I might——”</p>
<p>“You mayn’t do anything except to get out
and stay out! Do you hear? Shall I never be
obeyed?”</p>
<p>“Yes, mademoiselle; good-night.”</p>
<p>The soft tone was fully belied by the evil
glare of the French girl’s eyes, but that was not
seen by Miss Lucy Carrington.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_36">[36]</div>
<h2 id="c3"><span class="small">III</span> <br/>THE TRAGEDY</h2>
<p>The house faced the east, and, built on an
English model, was far wider than deep. A
broad hall ran through the centre from front to
back, and on either side there were successive
rooms whose windows looked out on equally
beautiful scenes, both front and back. On the
right of the hall, as one entered, was the long
living room, and beyond it, the library and music
room. The other side of the hall was a reception
room, opening into the sun parlor, and on
to the conservatory, and back of these, the dining
room and smaller breakfast room.</p>
<p>Breakfast was served at nine, and the
members of the family were usually all present.
Miss Carrington, herself, made a point of
being on time partly from habit, and also because
it gave her opportunity to chide those who
were late.</p>
<p>When she was not in her place, on the morning
after the stormy bridge game, Pauline expressed
surprise, and Haviland echoed her
words.</p>
<p>But Anita said scornfully, “She went to bed
in an awful tantrum and probably didn’t sleep
well.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_37">[37]</div>
<p>Miss Frayne was looking her prettiest, and
her roseleaf face with its fluffy golden halo,
was like a Greuze picture. She wore a frivolous
little house gown of blue crêpe de chine that just
matched her forget-me-not eyes. Not especially
appropriate garb for a secretary, but Miss Carrington
preferred her household to be well-dressed,
and really commanded pretty tints and
fabrics for the two girls. Pauline was in white
serge, of rather severe cut, but which suited her
as no frills and flounces could. Her black hair
was smoothly parted and coiled low over her
ears, and her clear ivory-tinted skin was flushed
faintly pink from the glow of the big, crackling
wood fire.</p>
<p>“It’s most unusual,” went on Pauline, after
a few moments more had passed, and the Lady
Lucy had not appeared. “I’m going up to see
if she is ill,—or——”</p>
<p>“Or merely in a tantrum extraordinary!”
said Anita, her blue eyes full of laughing disrespect
for her employer.</p>
<p>“’Nita,” said Haviland, as Pauline disappeared,
“hold your breakfast napkin up in front
of your face, quick!”</p>
<p>“Why?” said the girl, wonderingly, as she
did his bidding.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_38">[38]</div>
<p>“Because, if you hadn’t, I should have flown
at you and kissed you! And I mustn’t now, for
Haskins is approaching with muffins.”</p>
<p>Down came the shielding napkin and only the
arrival of the muffin-laden Haskins saved the
lovely laughing face from Haviland’s impetuous
caress.</p>
<p>The old butler fussed about, and several
minutes passed, when Pauline called from above
stairs, “Gray! Come here, at once!”</p>
<p>“Desperate case!” and Haviland rose, and
unhurriedly left the room, pinching Anita’s
little ear as he passed her.</p>
<p>Another moment and Miss Frayne heard an
exclamation from Haviland that made her rise
from the table and go flying upstairs herself.</p>
<p>The door of Miss Lucy’s boudoir was open,
and entering, she saw Pauline and Haviland with
horror-stricken faces, gazing at a terrible sight.</p>
<p>Miss Lucy Carrington, seated before her
dressing-table, her face white and ghastly, her
large eyes staring wide—staring horribly,—but,
without doubt, unseeing. Nor was this all of
the strangeness of the sight. She was robed in
an embroidered Oriental-looking gown, and wore
many jewels. Her red-dyed hair, dressed elaborately,
as she had worn it the night before, was
still crowned with the enormous comb of carved
tortoise-shell, but the comb was broken to bits.
One portion, still standing upright, rose above
the disordered coiffure, but the rest, in broken
scraps, lay scattered over the puffs of hair,—over
the white hands clasped in her lap,—and
on the floor at her feet.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_39">[39]</div>
<p>“What does it mean?” whispered Anita,
shuddering, “is she—is she dead?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” answered Haviland, briefly. He
stood, hands in pockets, gazing at the startling
figure.</p>
<p>“Who?—What?——” Anita’s eyes riveted
themselves on something else.</p>
<p>Around the neck of Miss Lucy was,—yes, it
<i>was</i>—a snake!</p>
<p>With a low scream, Anita flung herself into
Haviland’s arms, but he put her gently away
from him.</p>
<p>Aghast at this repulse, Anita put her hand
across her eyes and turned to leave the room.</p>
<p>“Mind where you go, ’Nita!” called out
Haviland, and the girl stopped just in time to
save herself from stepping into a mass of <i>débris</i>.</p>
<p>“Why!” she cried, “why, it’s Miss Lucy’s
tray!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_40">[40]</div>
<p>It was. The silver tray that had held the
breakfast tea was on the floor, and near it a
jumbled heap of silver and broken china that had
once been a costly Sevres set. Dainty white serviettes
were stained with the spilled tea and a
huge wet spot was near the overturned silver
teapot.</p>
<p>Hastily Anita ran from the room, but she
sank down on a couch in the hall just outside the
door, utterly unable to go further.</p>
<p>Fascinated by the beady eyes of the green
snake, Pauline stared at it, with clenched hands.
Haviland stepped nearer and lightly touched it.</p>
<p>“Is it—is it alive?” gasped Pauline.</p>
<p>“It’s paper,” replied Haviland quietly. “A
paper snake, a toy,—you know.”</p>
<p>“But who put it there? Aunt Lucy is deathly
afraid of snakes! Did fright kill her? Gray, is
she—murdered?”</p>
<p>“Yes, Pauline, she has been killed. But
could it be—fright? Impossible!”</p>
<p>“Not for her! You don’t know her horror
of snakes. Why, going through the Japanese
department of a shop, I’ve seen her turn white
and fairly fly from the counter where those
paper things were displayed.”</p>
<p>“But what else killed her? There is no
wound, no shot, no blood.”</p>
<p>“Get the doctor, Gray! Don’t wait a minute.
Telephone at once.”</p>
<p>“He can do nothing, Pauline. She is dead.”
Haviland spoke like a man in a daze.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_41">[41]</div>
<p>“But no matter, we must call him. Shall I?”</p>
<p>“No, I will.”</p>
<p>“Go into her bedroom,—use that telephone
by her bedside.”</p>
<p>Obediently, Haviland went on to the adjoining
room, the soft rugs giving forth no sound of
his footfalls.</p>
<p>The door was ajar, and as he opened it, he
called, “Come here, Pauline; look, the night
lights are burning, and the bed untouched. She
hasn’t been to bed at all.”</p>
<p>“Of course she hasn’t. She has her hair as
it was last evening. But her comb is broken.”</p>
<p>“Broken! It’s smashed! It’s in tiny bits!
She has been hit on the head,—don’t touch her,
Pauline! You mustn’t! I’ll call Dr. Stanton.
You go out of the room. Go and find Anita.”</p>
<p>But Pauline staid. Turning her back to the
still figure in the chair, she gazed curiously at
the upset tray on the floor. She stooped, when
Haviland’s voice came sharply from the next
room. “Don’t touch a thing, Pauline!” he cried,
as he held his hand over the transmitter.</p>
<p>She looked up, and then as she saw him turn
back to speak into the instrument, she stooped
swiftly and picking up something from the floor
she hurried from the room.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_42">[42]</div>
<p>She found Anita on the couch in the hall, and
speaking somewhat sharply, Pauline said,
“Where’s Estelle?”</p>
<p>“Mercy! I don’t know!” and Anita’s blue
eyes stared coldly. “How should I know anything
about Estelle?”</p>
<p>“But she must have brought that tray an
hour ago. Did she upset it, or who?”</p>
<p>“Pauline, why do you act as if I knew anything
about this matter. Is it because <i>you</i> do?”</p>
<p>The blue eyes, cold like steel, and the dark
ones, flashing fire from their shadows, looked
steadily at each other.</p>
<p>Gray Haviland came hurriedly out to the
hall.</p>
<p>“The doctor will be here at once,” he said;
“and he will call the coroner.”</p>
<p>“Coroner!” screamed Anita; and ran away
to her own room.</p>
<p>“Let her alone,” said Pauline, contemptuously;
“but Gray, we must nerve ourselves up
to this thing. Don’t you think we ought to—to
put away the jewels? It’s wrong to let any one
come into a room where a fortune in jewels is
displayed like that.”</p>
<p>“But Doctor Stanton said to touch nothing,—nothing
at all. You see, Pauline, in a murder
case,——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_43">[43]</div>
<p>“Oh, I know; ‘nothing disturbed till the Coroner
comes,’ and all that. But this is different,
Gray. Doctor Stanton didn’t know there are
two hundred thousand dollars’ worth of jewelry
on that—that—on her.”</p>
<p>“How do you know so exactly?”</p>
<p>“I’m not exact, but she has told me times
enough that the rope of pearls cost one hundred
thousand, and that corsage ornament she is
wearing and her rings and ear-rings are easily
worth the same sum. I tell you there will be policemen
here, and it isn’t right to throw temptation
in their way.”</p>
<p>“Besides,” and Anita’s voice spoke again
as she reappeared in the doorway, “besides,
Pauline, they are all yours now, and you should
be careful of them!”</p>
<p>The tone more than the words conveyed a
veiled insolence, and Pauline accepted it for
such. With a sudden determined movement, she
went swiftly to her aunt’s side, and unfastened
the long rope of pearls, the wonderful glittering
sunburst, and a large diamond and emerald crescent
that held together the glistening silk folds.
The rings and ear-rings she could not bring herself
to touch.</p>
<p>“It is only <i>right</i>,” she contended, as if trying
to persuade herself, “these are too valuable to
risk; no one could fail to be tempted by them.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_44">[44]</div>
<p>“Why don’t you finish your task?” said Anita,
smiling unpleasantly, “why leave so much?”</p>
<p>“No one would attempt to take the rings or
ear-rings,” said Pauline, steadily, “and that
scarab bracelet is not of great value.”</p>
<p>“I thought that was a most valuable antique
that her nephew sent her.”</p>
<p>“She thought so, too,” said Pauline, carelessly,
“but Carr told me it was an imitation.
Not one expert in a hundred can tell the difference,
anyway.”</p>
<p>As Pauline placed the mass of gems in the
safe, the doctor came. “What does it mean?”
cried the bewildered man, coming into the room.
“Miss Carrington——”</p>
<p>Words failed him as he saw the astounding
sight. For surely, no one had ever before seen
a murdered woman, sitting before her dressing-table,
staring but smiling, and garbed as for a
fancy-dress ball!</p>
<p>Doctor Stanton touched the icy-cold hand,
felt for the silent heart, and then turned his attention
to the disheveled hair and broken comb.</p>
<p>“Fractured skull,” he said, as his skilled
fingers thridded the auburn tresses. “Killed by
a sudden, swift blow on the head with a heavy,
blunt,—no, with a soft weapon; a black-jack or
sandbag.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_45">[45]</div>
<p>“A burglar!” exclaimed Pauline.</p>
<p>“Of course; who else would deal such a blow?
It was powerful,—dealt by a strong arm—it
has driven bits of this broken shell stuff into the
brain. But it was the force of the concussion
that killed her. Here is a deep dent,—and yet.—Tell
me the circumstances. Why is she rigged
out like this?”</p>
<p>“I’ve no idea,” answered Pauline, taking
the initiative. “When I left her last night, she
had on an evening gown. But this negligée is not
unusual; it is one of her favorites. Though why
she has on that spangled scarf, I can’t imagine.”</p>
<p>“She seems to have been posing before the
mirror, rather than engaged in making a toilette.”
Dr. Stanton was a pompous middle-aged
man of fussy manner. He did not again
touch the body, but he stepped about, noting the
strange conditions and commenting on them.
“This paper snake,—tight round her neck!
What does that mean?”</p>
<p>“What <i>can</i> it mean?” returned Pauline.
“She had an intense hatred,—even <i>fear</i> of
snakes; I’ve never seen it before. Could it have
been placed there to frighten her to death?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_46">[46]</div>
<p>“No; she didn’t die of fright. See, her
expression is placid,—even smiling. But the
shattered comb and dented skull have but one explanation,—a
stunning blow. Did she have on
the comb last evening?”</p>
<p>“Yes; it is a favorite one with her. An heirloom,
from a Colonial ancestor. It encircled
the entire back of her head, when whole.”</p>
<p>“At what time was she killed?” asked Gray
Haviland. He had stood, till now, a silent
listener to the conversation between Pauline and
the Doctor.</p>
<p>“Oh, many hours ago,” returned Stanton;
“six or eight at least. Evidently she was preparing
for bed, and trying the effect of some new
finery.”</p>
<p>“Those things are not new,” put in Anita;
“she has had them all a long time. But she
must have been admiring herself, for when we
found her she had on all her finest jewels.”</p>
<p>“What?” cried Dr. Stanton; “where are
they?”</p>
<p>“I took most of them off,” replied Pauline,
quietly, “and put them in the safe. If the police
people must come, I am not willing to have a
fortune in jewels here to tempt their cupidity.
And I have a right. It is no secret that my
cousin Carrington and I are her heirs. But that
snake perplexes me beyond all else. If you
knew her aversion to them,—even pictured
ones——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_47">[47]</div>
<p>“I do know it,” returned the doctor; “I have
often heard her say so. Ah,” as he stepped carefully
about, “she <i>was</i> adorning herself; see, here
is powder scattered on the floor. She used this
powder-puff, shaking it over the rug and floor.”</p>
<p>“I saw that the first thing!” cried Pauline,
excitedly; “and there was a——” she stopped,
looking in amazement at the white dust on the
floor. For where she had seen a distinct footprint,
as of a stockinged foot, there was now
merely a blurred whirl! Some one had obliterated
that footprint!</p>
<p>“A what?” asked the doctor, sharply.</p>
<p>“Nothing. A—a lot of powder spilled,—I
was going to say.”</p>
<p>Gray Haviland looked at her. “Tell the
truth, Pauline,” he said.</p>
<p>“I have,” she replied, with a calm quite
equalling his own. “Must we have the Coroner,
Dr. Stanton?”</p>
<p>“Yes, yes, of course; I will telephone at once.
There will be police and detectives,—oh, it is
a terrible case! Nothing must be touched, nothing!
If there is <i>any</i> clue to this mystery, do not
let it be disturbed.”</p>
<p>“But you say it was without doubt a burglar
who did it,” said Anita, her wide eyes gleaming
blue.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_48">[48]</div>
<p>“It must have been.”</p>
<p>“Then why were none of her jewels stolen?”</p>
<p>“Bless my soul!” and Dr. Stanton looked as
if a bomb had exploded at his feet. “Sure
enough! It cannot have been a burglar! Who,
then? What other motive than robbery——”</p>
<p>“It <i>was</i> a burglar,” declared Pauline, “and
he was—he was frightened away by—by a noise—or
something——”</p>
<p>“Not likely!” said Anita, “with all those
gems in easy reach!”</p>
<p>“The Coroner and the police must get here
at once!” and the doctor wiped his perspiring
brow. “Never have I seen such an inexplicable
state of affairs! Was—was Miss Carrington
indisposed at all last evening? Did she say or
do anything unusual?”</p>
<p>“Not at all,” began Pauline, but Anita interrupted;
“Yes, she did! She said, ‘You little
know what’s going to happen to me! To-morrow
you may sing another tune!’”</p>
<p>“What did she mean by that?”</p>
<p>“I’ve no idea. Could it mean suicide?”</p>
<p>“No!” thundered the doctor; “her skull was
fractured by some one bent on wilful murder!
As there is no robbery, we must look for a
deeper motive and a cleverer villain than any
professional burglar!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_49">[49]</div>
<h2 id="c4"><span class="small">IV</span> <br/>A PAPER SNAKE</h2>
<p>On the third floor was the bedroom of the
maid, Estelle, and before its locked door stood
Pauline and Anita, demanding admittance.
There was no response from inside, until Pauline
said sternly, “Unless you open this door at
once, Estelle, the police will force it open.”</p>
<p>The key turned, the door moved slowly ajar,
and Estelle’s face appeared, wearing an expression
of amazement.</p>
<p>“What is it you say, Miss Pauline? The
police? Why?”</p>
<p>The maid was making a very evident effort
to appear composed, and was succeeding wonderfully
well. Her eyes were reddened with
weeping,—a condition which a hasty dabbing of
powder had not concealed. She was nervously
trembling, but her air of injured innocence, if
assumed, was admirable.</p>
<p>“Estelle,” and Pauline loomed tall and magnificent
as an accusing angel, “what do you
know of your mistress’ death?”</p>
<p>Estelle gave a shriek and threw herself on
her bed in apparent hysterics.</p>
<p>“Don’t begin that!” ordered Pauline, “sit
up here and tell the truth.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_50">[50]</div>
<p>“But,” and the maid sat up, sobbing, “I
know nothing. How can I?”</p>
<p>“Nonsense! You took the tea-tray to her
at eight o’clock. What did you see?”</p>
<p>Estelle shrugged her shoulders. “I saw
Miss Carrington sitting before her mirror. She,
I assumed, was engrossed in reverie, so I set
down the tray on a tabouret and departed.”</p>
<p>“You noticed nothing amiss?” said Anita,
staring at the girl.</p>
<p>“No; I scarce looked at the lady. She reproved
me harshly last night, and I had no wish
to annoy her. I set down the tray with haste
and silently departed.”</p>
<p>“You set it down? Who, then, overturned
it?”</p>
<p>“Overturned? Is it then upset?” Estelle’s
manner was the impersonal one of the trained
servant, who must show surprise at nothing, but
it was a trifle overdone.</p>
<p>“Estelle, stop posing. Wake up to realities.
Miss Carrington is dead! Do you hear? Dead!”</p>
<p>“Ah! <i>Mon Dieu</i>! Did it then kill her?” and
Estelle’s calm gave way and she screamed and
moaned in wild hysterics.</p>
<p>“What can we do with her?” asked Anita,
helplessly; “she must know all about the—the——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_51">[51]</div>
<p>“The murder,” said Pauline calmly. “But
she will tell us nothing. It is useless to question
her. The Coroner will attend to it, anyway.”</p>
<p>“The Coroner,” and Anita looked frightened.
“Will he question all of us?”</p>
<p>“Of course he will. And, Anita,” Pauline
whirled on her suddenly, “what are you going
to say was the errand that took you to Aunt
Lucy’s room after one o’clock last night?”</p>
<p>“I! Nothing of the sort! I was not in her
room after we left it together.”</p>
<p>“I saw you. Don’t trouble to deny it,” and
Pauline dropped her eyelids as one bored by a
conversation.</p>
<p>“You did!” and Anita’s flower face turned
rosy pink and her blue eyes blazed with an intensity
that Pauline’s dark ones could never
match. “Be careful, Pauline Stuart, or I shall
tell what <i>I</i> know! You <i>dare</i> to make up such a
story! It was <i>I</i> who saw <i>you</i> come from your
aunt’s room at a late hour! What have you to
say now?”</p>
<p>“Nothing—to you,” and Pauline swept from
the room and returned slowly down the stairway
to the second floor.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_52">[52]</div>
<p>The sight of two police officers in the hall
gave her a sudden start. How had they appeared,
so soon? And how dreadful to see them
in the palatial home that had heretofore housed
only gentle-mannered aristocrats and obsequious
liveried servants! The men looked ill at
ease as they stood against the rich background
of tapestry hangings and tropical palms, but
their faces showed a stern appreciation of their
duty, and they looked at Pauline with deferential
but acute scrutiny.</p>
<p>Not noticing them in any way, the girl, her
head held high, went straight to her aunt’s room.
Sergeant Flake was in charge, and he refused
her admission.</p>
<p>“Coroner’s orders, ma’am,” he said; “he’ll
be here himself shortly, and then you can see
him.”</p>
<p>“Come away, Pauline,” and Haviland appeared
and took her by the arm; “where’s
Anita?”</p>
<p>“I left her in Estelle’s room. Oh Gray, that
girl——”</p>
<p>“Hush!” and gripping her firmly, Haviland
led her to a small sitting room and shut the
door. “Now listen, Pauline; mind what I say.
Don’t give the least bit of information or express
the slightest notion of opinion except to the
chief authorities. And not to them until they
ask you. This is a terrible affair, and a mighty
strange one.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_53">[53]</div>
<p>“Who did it, Gray?”</p>
<p>“Never you mind. Don’t even ask questions.
The very walls have ears!”</p>
<p>“Who upset that breakfast tray?”</p>
<p>“Estelle, of course.”</p>
<p>“She says she didn’t.”</p>
<p>“She lies. Everybody will lie; why, Pauline,
you must lie yourself.”</p>
<p>“I won’t do it! I have no reason to!”</p>
<p>“You may find that you have. But, at least,
Pauline, I beg of you, that you will keep your
mouth shut. There will be developments soon,—there
must be,—and then we will know what to
do.”</p>
<p>The two returned to the boudoir. At first
glance it seemed to be full of men. The beautiful
room, with its ornate but harmonious
furnishings and appointments of the Marie Antoinette
period, was occupied with eager representatives
of the law and justice hunting for any
indication of the ruthless hand that had felled
the owner of all that elegance.</p>
<p>Coroner Scofield was receiving the report of
Doctor Moore, who had arrived with him.</p>
<p>Dr. Moore agreed with Dr. Stanton that the
deceased had been struck with a heavy weapon
that had fractured the skull, but he admitted
the wounds showed some strange conditions
which could only be explained by further investigation.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_54">[54]</div>
<p>The Coroner was deep in thought as he
studied the face of the dead woman.</p>
<p>“It is most mysterious,” he declared; “that
face is almost smiling! it is the face of a happy
woman. Clearly, she did not know of her approaching
fate.”</p>
<p>“The blow was struck from behind,” informed
Dr. Moore.</p>
<p>“Even so, why didn’t she see the approach of
the assailant in the mirror? She is looking
straight into the large glass,—must have been
looking in it at the moment of her death. <i>Why</i>
receive that death blow without a tremor of fear
or even a glance of startled inquiry?”</p>
<p>Inspector Brunt stood by, gravely, and for
the most part silently, watching and listening.</p>
<p>“That might imply,” he said, slowly, “that
if she did see the assailant, it was some one she
knew, and of whom she had no fear.”</p>
<p>Gray Haviland looked up suddenly. A deep
red spread over his face and then, seeing himself
narrowly watched by the detectives present,
he set his lips firmly together and said no word.</p>
<p>Pauline turned white and trembled, but she
too said nothing.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_55">[55]</div>
<p>“Why is she sitting in this large easy chair?”
went on the Coroner; “Is it not customary for
ladies at their dressing tables to use a light side-chair?”</p>
<p>This showed decidedly astute perception, and
the Inspector looked interestedly at the chair in
question, which he had not especially noticed
before.</p>
<p>Being tacitly appealed to by the Coroner’s
inquiring eyes, Pauline replied: “It is true that
my aunt usually sat at her dressing-table in a
small chair,—that one, in fact,” and she pointed
to a dainty chair of gilded cane. “I have no
idea why she should choose the heavy, cushioned
one.”</p>
<p>“It would seem,” the Coroner mused, “as
if she might have sat down there to admire the
effect of her belongings rather than to arrange
her hair or toilette.”</p>
<p>Absorbedly, all present watched Coroner
Scofield’s movements.</p>
<p>It was true, the quietly reposeful attitude of
the still figure leaning back against the brocaded
upholstery, and so evidently looking in the great
gold-framed mirror, was that of one admiring or
criticising her own appearance. Added to this,
the fact of her bizarre costume and strange
adornments, it seemed certain that Miss Carrington
had come to her death while innocently
happy in the feminine employment of dressing
up in the elaborate finery that she loved.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_56">[56]</div>
<p>But the snake!</p>
<p>Carefully Coroner Scofield removed the inexplicable
thing. He held it up that all might
see. A Japanese paper snake, a cheap toy, such
as is found together with fans and lanterns in
the Oriental department of large shops.</p>
<p>“Could this have been placed round her neck
after death?” Scofield inquired of the doctors.</p>
<p>The two physicians agreed, that though that
was possible, yet the appearance of the flesh beneath
it seemed to indicate its having encircled
the throat during life.</p>
<p>“Never!” cried Pauline, excitedly. “Aunt
Lucy <i>couldn’t</i> have sat there and <i>smiled</i>, with a
snake anywhere near her!”</p>
<p>“That would seem so,” and Dr. Stanton
nodded his head. “I well know of my late patient’s
aversion to snakes. It amounted almost
to a mania! It is not an uncommon one, many
women feel the same, though seldom to so great
an extent.”</p>
<p>“That deepens the mystery,” said Coroner
Scofield; “unless, indeed, the snake was put on
after the crime. But that is even more mysterious.
I shall now remove these valuable jewels,
and give them to——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_57">[57]</div>
<p>He looked inquiringly at Haviland and
Pauline, and the latter immediately responded:
“Give them to me, Mr. Scofield. I am now mistress
here.”</p>
<p>Haviland said nothing, but he looked at
Pauline as if in disapproval.</p>
<p>“Is this of great worth?” inquired Scofield,
as he carefully removed the scarf from the
shoulders it surrounded.</p>
<p>“Only moderately so,” returned Pauline.
“It is a Syrian scarf and was sent to her by her
nephew who lives in Egypt. It is not new, he
sent several to us about a year ago.”</p>
<p>She took the long, heavy, white and silver
drapery, and laid it in a nearby wardrobe. Then
the Coroner unfastened the large pearls from
their place as eardrops, and taking up one lifeless
hand removed its rings. All these he
handed to Pauline without a word.</p>
<p>“What is this?” he exclaimed suddenly; and
opening the curled-up fingers of the other hand
he drew forth a crumpled gray object. It was a
glove, of soft suéde, and so tightly had it been
held that it was deeply creased.</p>
<p>“A man’s glove!” said the Coroner, smoothing
it out. “Will the wonders of this case
never cease?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_58">[58]</div>
<p>He scrutinized it, but remarking only that it
was of medium size and superior quality, he laid
it carefully aside for the time.</p>
<p>From the same arm he removed the scarab
bracelet, also handing that to Pauline.</p>
<p>“The lady was fond of Oriental jewelry,”
he observed.</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned Haviland, before Pauline
could speak. “Her nephew sent or brought
home much of it. But, as we informed you,
Miss Carrington was also wearing pearls and
diamonds of enormous value, compared to which
these trinkets are as nothing.”</p>
<p>“But scarabs, I am told, are of great price.”</p>
<p>“Some are,” returned Haviland. “That
bracelet, however, is not genuine, nor of great
value.”</p>
<p>Then the Coroner, with delicate touch, removed
the bits of broken tortoise-shell from the
puffs of hair, and carefully laid them together on
a small silver tray he appropriated from the
dressing-table litter.</p>
<p>“I think,” said Inspector Brunt, in his
grave, slow way, “that it will be wise to photograph
the whole picture from several points of
view before the autopsy is performed.”</p>
<p>Arrangements had been made for this, and
Detective Hardy, a young man from Headquarters,
stepped forward with his camera.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_59">[59]</div>
<p>As those who were asked to left the room,
Pauline and Gray went out together, and met
Anita just outside in the hall.</p>
<p>“Oh, tell me, Gray! Who did it? What does
it all mean?” she cried, and grasped him by the
arm.</p>
<p>“Tell her about it, Gray,” said Pauline, and
leaving the two together, she went swiftly along
the hall to her own room.</p>
<p>The alert eyes of the guarding policemen followed
her, but also they followed the movements
of every one else, and if they had, as yet, any
suspicions, no one knew of them.</p>
<p>Meantime, the gruesome work of photography
went on.</p>
<p>Surely never was such a strange subject for
the camera! Denuded of her jewels, but still
robed in her gorgeous dressing-gown, and still
leaning back in her luxurious arm-chair, with
that strange smile of happy expectancy, Miss
Lucy Carrington presented the same air of regal
authority she had always worn in life. Her eyes
were widely staring, but there was no trace or
hint of fear in her peaceful attitude of repose.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_60">[60]</div>
<p>“There’s no solution!” said Inspector
Brunt, deeply thoughtful. “No one could or
would crack a skull like that, but an experienced
and professional burglar and housebreaker.
And such a one could have but one motive, robbery,
and the jewels were not stolen!”</p>
<p>“Inside job,” observed Scofield, briefly, his
eyes on his work.</p>
<p>“Maybe the burglar was frightened away at
the critical moment.”</p>
<p>“No. Whatever frightened him would be
known to some member of the family.”</p>
<p>“Maybe it is.”</p>
<p>“Hey? Have you a theory?” and the Coroner
looked up suddenly.</p>
<p>“Anything but! There’s no <i>possible</i> theory
that will fit the facts.”</p>
<p>“Except the truth.”</p>
<p>“Yes, except the truth. But it will be long
before we find that, I’m afraid. It strikes me
it’s at the bottom of an unusually deep well.”</p>
<p>“Well, you’d <i>better</i> find it. It’d be a nice
how d’y’ do for you to fall down on <i>this</i> case!”</p>
<p>“There’s no falling down been done yet.
And it may well be that the very fact of there
being such strange and irreconcilable conditions
shall prove a help rather than a hindrance.”</p>
<p>And then, all being in readiness, the lifeless
form of Miss Carrington, once the proud domineering
autocrat, now laid low, was borne to a
distant room, for the autopsy that might cast a
further light on the mystery of her tragic death.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_61">[61]</div>
<h2 id="c5"><span class="small">V</span> <br/>A MAN’S GLOVE</h2>
<p>Inspector Brunt and the young detective,
Hardy, were interviewing the members of the
household in the library, and the task was not
an easy one. The two girls were distinctly at
odds, and Gray Haviland, whether authoritatively
or not, persisted in assuming a major rôle.</p>
<p>“It seems to me,” Haviland said, “that it is
the most remarkable mystery that has ever occurred
in the experience of you police people.
Now, I think the wisest plan is to call in a big detective,—no
offence, Mr. Hardy,—but I mean a
noted fellow, like Stone, say, and let him get at
the root of the crime.”</p>
<p>“I think, Gray,” and Pauline looked very
haughty, “that any such suggestion would come
better from me. I am now mistress of the
place, and it is for me to say what we shall do.”</p>
<p>“I know it,” and Haviland looked no whit
abashed, “but you know Carr Loria is equally in
authority, even if he isn’t here, and you
see——”</p>
<p>“I don’t see that Carr’s absence gives <i>you</i>
any authority!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_62">[62]</div>
<p>“But it does, in a way. As Miss Lucy’s man
of affairs, I ought to look out for the interests of
her heirs, at least, for the absent one. I’m sure
Loria would want to do everything possible to
find the murderer.”</p>
<p>“Has this nephew been notified yet?” asked
Inspector Brunt.</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned Pauline; “we’ve telephoned
a cablegram to the city to be sent to
him in Egypt. But I don’t know when he will
get it, nor when we’ll get a response.”</p>
<p>“Where is he?”</p>
<p>“His permanent address is Cairo, but he is
off in the desert, or somewhere, so much that
sometimes he is away from communication for
weeks at a time. Still I’ve sent it, that’s all I
can do.”</p>
<p>“What did you tell him?”</p>
<p>“I made it rather long and circumstantial. I
told him of Aunt Lucy’s death, and that she was
killed by a blow on the head by a burglar, which
fractured her skull. I asked him if he would
come home or if we should go there. You see, we
were intending to sail for Egypt in February.”</p>
<p>“Who were?”</p>
<p>“Myself, my aunt, Miss Frayne and Mr.
Haviland. Carrington Loria has been begging
us to make the trip, and at last Aunt Lucy decided
to go. Our passage is engaged, and all
plans made.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_63">[63]</div>
<p>“And now——?”</p>
<p>“Now, I do not know. Everything is uncertain.
But if the burglar can be found, and punished,
I see no reason why I, at least, shouldn’t
go on and make the trip. The others must
please themselves.”</p>
<p>Pauline looked at Anita and at Haviland
with a detached air, as if now they were no
longer members of the household, and their
plans did not concern her.</p>
<p>Not so Haviland. “Sure I’ll go,” he cried;
“I fancy Carr will be mighty glad to keep me on
in the same capacity I served Miss Carrington.
He’ll need a representative in this country. I
doubt he’ll come over,—there’s no need, if I
look after all business matters for him.”</p>
<p>“What does he do in Egypt?” asked the Inspector,
who was half engrossed looking over
his memoranda, and really took slight interest
in the absent heir.</p>
<p>“He’s excavating wonderful temples and
things,” volunteered Anita, for Pauline and
Gray were looking, amazed, at a man who came
into the room. He was the detective who had
been left in charge of the boudoir, and he carried
a strange-looking object.</p>
<p>“What <i>is</i> it?” cried Pauline.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_64">[64]</div>
<p>“It’s a black-jack.” replied the detective.
“I found it, Inspector, just under the edge of the
tassel trimmin’ of the lounge. The fellow slung
it away, and it hid under the fringe, out of sight.”</p>
<p>Gravely, Inspector Brunt took the weapon.
It was rudely made, of black cloth, a mere bag,
long and narrow, and filled with bird shot.</p>
<p>“That’s the weapon!” declared Brunt. “A
man could hit a blow with that thing that
would break the skull without cutting the skin.
Yes, there is no further doubt that Miss Carrington
was murdered by a burglar. This is
a burglar’s weapon; this it was that crushed the
shell comb to fragments, and fractured the skull,
leaving the body sitting upright, and unmutilated.
Death was, of course, instantaneous.”</p>
<p>“But the jewels!” said Detective Hardy,
wonderingly; “why——”</p>
<p>“I don’t <i>know</i> why!” said Brunt, a little
testily; “that is for you detectives to find out.
I have to go by what evidence I find. Can I find
a broken skull and a black-jack in the same room
and not deduce a burglarious assault that proved
fatal? The thief may have been scared off or
decided he didn’t want the loot, but that doesn’t
affect the certainty that we have the weapon and
therefore the case is a simple one. That burglar
can be found, without a doubt. Then we shall
learn <i>why</i> he didn’t steal the jewels.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_65">[65]</div>
<p>“But the snake?” said Pauline, looking wonderingly
at the Inspector; “the burglar must
have been a maniac or an eccentric to put that
snake round my aunt’s neck after he killed her,—and
nothing will ever make me believe that
she allowed it there while alive!”</p>
<p>“That’s what I say,” put in Haviland; “the
whole affair is so inexplicable,—excuse me, Mr.
Brunt, but I can’t think it such a simple case as
you do,—that I think we should engage expert
skill to solve the mysteries of it all.”</p>
<p>“That must come later,” and Inspector
Brunt resumed his usual gravity of manner
which had been disturbed by the discovery of
the black-jack. “Will you now please give me
some detailed information as to the circumstances?
Is the house always securely locked at
night?”</p>
<p>“Very much so,” answered Haviland;
“Miss Carrington was not overly timid, but she
always insisted on careful precautions against
burglary. She had a house full of valuable furniture,
curios, and art works besides her personal
belongings. Yes, the house was always
supposed to be carefully locked and bolted.”</p>
<p>“Whose duty is it to look after it?”</p>
<p>“The butler Haskins, and his wife, who is the
cook, had all such matters in charge.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_66">[66]</div>
<p>“I will interview them later. Now please
tell me, any of you, why Miss Carrington was
arrayed in such peculiar fashion, last evening.”</p>
<p>“I can’t imagine,” said Pauline. “My aunt
was not a vain woman. I have never known her
to sit before a mirror, except when necessary,
to have her hair dressed. It is almost unbelievable
that she should deliberately don those jewels
and scarf and sit down there as if to admire the
effect. Yet it had that appearance.”</p>
<p>“But she wore the jewels during the evening,
did she not?”</p>
<p>“Not all of them. She wore her pearls, because,
as she told us, and as I have often heard
her say, pearls must be worn occasionally to
keep them in condition. But she added a large
number of valuable gems—or, some one did,—after
we left her last night.”</p>
<p>“Whom do you mean by we?”</p>
<p>“Miss Frayne and myself. We were in her
room, to say good-night to her, and we left at the
same time.”</p>
<p>“At what time?”</p>
<p>“About quarter past twelve, I should think,
wasn’t it, Anita? We went upstairs about midnight,
and were with my aunt ten or fifteen
minutes.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_67">[67]</div>
<p>“Were your good-nights amicable?” asked
the Inspector, and Pauline looked up in surprise.
Then, recollecting the last words of her aunt,
she shut her lips obstinately and made no reply.</p>
<p>“Indeed, they were not!” declared Miss
Frayne; “Miss Carrington told both Miss Stuart
and myself that it would be our last night beneath
this roof! That to-day we must seek
some other home, for she would harbor us no
longer!”</p>
<p>“Ah! And why did she thus treat you?”</p>
<p>“There was no especial reason,” and Anita’s
lovely blue eyes looked straight at the Inspector
with a pathetic gaze, “she was in a tantrum, as
she frequently was.”</p>
<p>“She didn’t mean it,” put in Pauline, hastily.</p>
<p>“She did!” asseverated Anita; “I’ve heard
her threaten to send us away before, but never so
earnestly. She meant it last night, I am sure.
And, too, she knew something would happen to
her last night,—she said so.”</p>
<p>“What? what’s that?”</p>
<p>“Do hush, Anita!” said Pauline; “those
foolish words meant nothing!”</p>
<p>“Proceed, Miss Frayne,” and the Inspector
spoke sternly.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_68">[68]</div>
<p>“She did,” went on Anita. “I don’t remember
the exact words, but she said I little knew
what was going to happen to her, and she said
‘to-morrow you may sing another song!’ Surely
such words meant something!”</p>
<p>“If they did,” said Pauline, angrily, “they
merely meant that she was going to dismiss
you to-day!”</p>
<p>“Not at all,” and Anita glanced at her, “she
distinctly said something would happen to her,—not
to me.”</p>
<p>“You know better than to take things she
said in a temper, seriously! If we are to repeat
idle conversations, suppose I say that I
heard <i>you</i> say last evening that you’d like to
kill her!”</p>
<p>“I didn’t!” shrieked Anita.</p>
<p>“You did,” declared Pauline, calmly; “and
Gray said she ought to be killed, too. I know
you didn’t mean to kill her, but I’ve just as much
right to quote your foolish words as you have
to quote hers.”</p>
<p>“Nonsense!” said Haviland; “let up, Polly!
You two are always at each other! As there is
no question as to who killed poor Miss Lucy, why
rake up our foolish words spoken under the intense
provocation of her exhibition of temper,—which
was specially trying last night. Inspector,
can we tell you anything more of importance?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_69">[69]</div>
<p>So far the Inspector had been almost silent,
and appeared to be learning some points from
the conversation not addressed to him. Now, he
changed his manner, and began briskly to ask
questions.</p>
<p>“This glove,” he said, holding it out, “was,
as you know, found clasped in her hand. Is it
yours, Mr. Haviland?”</p>
<p>“No,” said the young man, as, after a close
examination of the glove he handed it back;
“no, it is a size smaller than I wear, and it is of
a different make from mine.”</p>
<p>“Have you any idea whose it can be? It is
highly improbable the burglar left it.”</p>
<p>“I’ve no idea,” and Haviland shrugged his
shoulders. “But if it was not left by the intruder,
where could it possibly have come from?
It is a man’s glove.”</p>
<p>“Could it be one of Cousin Carr’s?” said
Pauline. “Aunt Lucy was awfully fond of anything
of his. She kept one of his caps in her
drawer for months, after he left the last time.”</p>
<p>“No,” replied Haviland; “it isn’t Loria’s.
He wears larger gloves than I do. My theory
points to a sort of gentleman burglar, a ‘Raffles,’
you know, and I think he talked with Miss Lucy,
before he struck that blow, and disarmed her
mind of fear.”</p>
<p>“What an extraordinary idea!” and Pauline
looked thoughtful.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_70">[70]</div>
<p>“But how else explain the glove?”</p>
<p>“And the snake? Did your gentleman burglar
persuade her to wear that paper thing?
Never! Gray, you’re absurd!”</p>
<p>“Another thing,” went on Inspector Brunt,
returning the glove to his roomy pocket-book;
“In the bedroom we noticed a glass of milk and
beside it an empty plate. Was it the lady’s
habit to have a night lunch?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” said Anita; “but she rarely ate it.
In case of insomnia, she had ready a light repast,
but she almost never touched it.”</p>
<p>“The glass of milk is still untouched,” said
Brunt, “but the plate is empty. What did it
contain?”</p>
<p>“A sandwich, I think,” said Anita. “That
is what Estelle usually prepared for her. She
will know,—Estelle, the maid.”</p>
<p>“Miss Carrington’s lady’s maid?”</p>
<p>“Yes; though not hers exclusively. She was
expected to act as maid for Miss Stuart and
myself also, at such times as Miss Carrington
didn’t require her services.”</p>
<p>“And she, then, brought the breakfast tray,
that is upset on the floor?”</p>
<p>“Yes; Miss Lucy always had an early cup
of tea, before she dressed for breakfast with the
family.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_71">[71]</div>
<p>“And the maid took it to her this morning?
Did she not then discover the—the tragedy?”</p>
<p>“She says not!” cried Pauline; “but I’m
sure she did! She says she saw Miss Lucy at
the mirror, and thinking her engrossed, merely
left the tray on the tabouret and went away.”</p>
<p>“Ridiculous!” exclaimed Haviland; “What
does Estelle mean by such lies? Of course she
saw Miss Carrington’s strange appearance, of
course she was frightened out of her wits, and
of course she dropped the tray and ran. But
why not say so? And why not give an immediate
alarm? She took that tray, probably,
about eight. Pauline went up at nine. What
was Estelle doing all that time? Why didn’t
she go in to dress Miss Carrington? I tell you,
Mr. Inspector, there’s a lot of queer work to be
explained, and with all due respect to the force,
I’m pretty sure you’ll need expert service if
you’re going to get anywhere. And I’m sure,
too, that if we can get word to Carrington Loria
and back, he’ll say spare no trouble or expense
to avenge his aunt’s murder. He is equally heir
with you, Pauline, and he ought to be consulted.”</p>
<p>“The will hasn’t been read yet,” said Miss
Stuart; “we can’t assume anything until that is
done.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_72">[72]</div>
<p>“Pshaw! you know perfectly well half of the
bulk of the estate is yours and half Carr’s. I
have a small slice and Miss Frayne a bit. The
older servants have small legacies, and there are
a few charities. That, Mr. Brunt, is the gist of
the will. Do you not agree with me, that as I was
the man of business for the late Miss Carrington,
I am justified, in the absence of Mr. Loria, in continuing
my services, at least, until we can get
definite directions from him?”</p>
<p>“Those matters are outside my province, Mr.
Haviland. Miss Carrington’s legal advisers will
doubtless come here soon, and such things will
be decided by them. Now, here’s another
point. I noted in the course of our investigation
in the boudoir a quantity of powder fallen on
the floor near the dressing table, in such relation
to it that it would seem Miss Carrington was
using the face powder as she sat there. Was
this her habit?”</p>
<p>“Her habit? Yes;” said Anita, “Miss Carrington
was in the habit of using face powder,—even
cosmetics. It is not strange then, that such
a proceeding was part of her night toilette.”</p>
<p>“No, not at all,” agreed Mr. Brunt. “But
where the powder was thickest, on the hard floor,
near the rug, was a muddled spot, as if some one
had wiped out or swept up a mark or print. Can
any of you explain this?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_73">[73]</div>
<p>No one spoke, and the stern voice went on.
“I remember, Miss Stuart, that you began to
say something bearing on this while we were in
that room, and you suddenly stopped, appearing
confused. I ask you why?”</p>
<p>Pauline hesitated, bit her lip, looked at Gray
and then at Anita, and finally said, “I may as
well tell. It is nothing. When I went to my
aunt’s room, and found what I did find,—I was
so excited and nervous I scarce knew what I did.
But I remember seeing a footprint in that powder,
and in obedience to an impulsive instinct I—I
obliterated it.”</p>
<p>“With what?”</p>
<p>“With my handkerchief. I merely slapped at
it, and the light powder flew about it.”</p>
<p>“Why did you do this?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know. I had no real reason. I was
not thinking of what I was doing.”</p>
<p>“Then you did not have a desire to shield
some one from possible suspicion?” The words
were shot at her so swiftly that Pauline gasped.</p>
<p>“Suspicion! What do you mean? Was it
not the work of a burglar?”</p>
<p>“Was the impression of a foot that you saw,
the foot of a man or a woman?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_74">[74]</div>
<p>“How can I tell? It was large, but as it was
a bare or stockinged foot I could not judge.
Might not the burglar have removed his boots,
before entering the room?”</p>
<p>“He might, indeed, and that is just what he
did do. For more prints of that stockinged
foot have been discovered on the stairs, and
there is no doubt that the tracks are those of the
assailant of Miss Carrington. With your permission,
Miss Stuart, I will now go to interview
the servants. May I ask you to await me here,
all of you? I shall not be very long.”</p>
<p>As the Inspector and the detectives left the
room, Haskins appeared to announce Mrs.
Frothingham and Count Henri Charlier.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_75">[75]</div>
<h2 id="c6"><span class="small">VI</span> <br/>A NEIGHBOR’S CALL</h2>
<p>“Oh, is it not terrible? What <i>can</i> I say to
comfort you!”</p>
<p>Mrs. Frothingham’s distressed tones and
her air of eager, intense sympathy met with
little response from Pauline.</p>
<p>Haviland had been called from the room on
an errand and Anita’s willingness to receive the
neighbor’s condolences did not seem acceptable.
The overdressed, forward-mannered widow continued
to direct her attention entirely to Pauline,
and that young woman merely surveyed her
visitor coolly and replied in monosyllables.</p>
<p>“Thanks,” she said, and her icy air would
have deterred a less determined intruder.</p>
<p>“I simply couldn’t help running over as soon
as I heard the dreadful news. For we are
neighbors after all, though not so very well acquainted;
and neighbors have a camaraderie of
their own, I think.”</p>
<p>“Yes?” said Pauline, and her eyelids fell
slightly, with an expression of boredness.</p>
<p>“Yes, indeed,” Mrs. Frothingham rattled
on; “and I said to our dear Count, we must run
over at once, there may be something we can do
for the saddened ones.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_76">[76]</div>
<p>“Thank you;” and had a marble statue been
given vocal powers the effect would have been
much the same.</p>
<p>“Dear friend,” continued the unabashed visitor,
“I know how overcome you must be——”</p>
<p>“I am not overcome at all,” said Pauline,
rising, and determined to hear no more; “and
I must beg to be excused, Mrs. Frothingham, as
I have many matters to attend to this morning.”</p>
<p>“Ah, yes, of course, you have. We will not
detain you. The Count and I merely called for
a moment to inquire——”</p>
<p>“Yes, I quite understand. Miss Frayne
will be pleased to answer your inquiries. Thank
you both, and—good-morning.”</p>
<p>With a polite but distant bow, Pauline left
the room, and as Count Charlier sprang to hold
the door open for her, he, after a moment’s hesitation,
followed her out.</p>
<p>“A moment, I beg, Miss Stuart,” he said
as they reached the hall; “You are offended at
Mrs. Frothingham’s intrusion, but have I not
a right to call? Was I not such a friend of
Miss Carrington as to justify this tribute of
respect to her memory?”</p>
<p>“Certainly, Count,” and Pauline grew a shade
kinder, “but I am not sufficiently acquainted with
your friend to receive her visits.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_77">[77]</div>
<p>“Ah, no. That is conceded. But, I pray you,
tell me of the sad affair. I have heard no details,—that
is, unless you would rather not.”</p>
<p>“No, I am not unwilling. You were a good
friend of Aunt Lucy’s—she was fond of you, and
I am glad to talk to some one. Let us sit here.”
Pauline indicated a recessed seat in the hall and
the pair sat there. She recounted briefly the
story of the tragedy and the Count was duly
sympathetic. Pauline watched him closely, and
discerned great interest but little grief or
sorrow.</p>
<p>“A burglar, of course,” said the Count hearing
of the cruel weapon. “How <i>could</i> any one
attack the charming lady! And the marvelous
jewels she wore! They were, of course,
stolen?”</p>
<p>“No; that’s the strange part. They were
not.”</p>
<p>“Ah, how splendid!” and his absorbed air of
satisfaction gave Pauline a thrill of disgust at
his cold-bloodedness. “And now they are all
yours? Those magnificent gems?”</p>
<p>“The property, most of it, is divided between
my cousin and myself.”</p>
<p>“Your cousin? Mr. Haviland?”</p>
<p>“No; he is but a distant connection. I
mean my first cousin, Mr. Loria, now in Egypt.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_78">[78]</div>
<p>“Ah, yes, I have heard Miss Carrington refer
to him. He will come home?”</p>
<p>“I do not know. We have cabled of course.
Count Charlier, do you remember hearing my
aunt say, last evening, that she expected something
to happen to her?”</p>
<p>“I remember, Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>“Have you any idea what she meant?”</p>
<p>“I? But how could I know?”</p>
<p>“Answer my question, please.”</p>
<p>The Count’s eyes fell, and he shifted his feet
about uneasily. At last he said: “It is not
pleasant to say such things, but since you ask,
I may be permitted to assume that the late Miss
Carrington had a regard for my humble self.”</p>
<p>“And she expected, she—hoped that her regard
might be returned?”</p>
<p>“It may be so.”</p>
<p>“And that last night you might tell her so?”</p>
<p>“You honor me.”</p>
<p>“Did you tell her so?”</p>
<p>“I did not, Miss Stuart. What might have
happened had she lived I cannot say, but I did
not, last evening, say any word to Miss Carrington
of my aspiration to her hand.”</p>
<p>“Did you say anything that could have been
taken as a hint that some time, say, in the near
future, you might express such an aspiration?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_79">[79]</div>
<p>“I may have done so.”</p>
<p>“Thank you, Count Charlier. I had perhaps
no right to ask, but you have answered my
rather impertinent questions straightforwardly,
and I thank you.”</p>
<p>Pauline rose, as if to end the interview. In
the doorway appeared Anita. “Pauline,” she
said, “I wish you would come back and listen
to Mrs. Frothingham’s story. It seems to me
of decided importance.”</p>
<p>“You have something to tell me?” asked
Pauline, returning to the library and looking at
the unwelcome neighbor with patient tolerance.</p>
<p>“Yes, Miss Stuart. Now, it may be nothing,—nothing,
I mean, of consequence, that is, you
may not think so, but I——”</p>
<p>“Suppose you let me hear it and judge for
myself.”</p>
<p>“Yes. Well, it’s only this. I was wakeful
last night, or rather early this morning, and
looking from my bedroom window, which faces
this house, I saw a man climb out of a window on
the first floor and skulk away among the shrubbery.”</p>
<p>“At what time was this?” and Pauline
looked interested at last.</p>
<p>“About four o’clock. He was to all appearances
a burglar——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_80">[80]</div>
<p>“How could you tell? Was it not dark at
that hour in the morning?”</p>
<p>“No; the moon is past full, you know, and it
shone brightly in the western sky.”</p>
<p>“Enough for you to discern the man
clearly?”</p>
<p>“I took a field-glass to assist my vision. He
stealthily climbed out and skirting the bushes
made his way swiftly toward the great gates.”</p>
<p>“This is indeed an important bit of information,
Mrs. Frothingham; I dare say you ought to
tell it to the police who are here.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I couldn’t! I’m so timid about such
things! But,—if you would go with me, Miss
Stuart——”</p>
<p>“Miss Frayne will go with you,” said
Pauline, coolly; “You will find a policeman in
the hall who will direct you where to find the
Inspector.”</p>
<p>Without another word Pauline bowed in a
way to include the lady and the Count also, and
went away to her own room.</p>
<p>“Stuck-up thing!” exclaimed Mrs. Frothingham,
and Anita nodded her golden head in
agreement.</p>
<p>Inspector Brunt instructed Hardy to hear
the story of Mrs. Frothingham, and he devoted
his own attention to Count Charlier, of whom he
had heard as being a friend of Miss Carrington’s.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_81">[81]</div>
<p>He quizzed the Frenchman rather pointedly
as to his friendship with the unfortunate lady
and the Count became decidedly ill at ease.</p>
<p>“Why do you ask me so much?” he objected;
“I was a friend, yes; I may have aspired to a
nearer relation, yes? That is no crime?”</p>
<p>“Not at all, Count,” said Mr. Brunt; “I only
want to find out if Miss Carrington’s strange
reference to something about to happen to her
could have had any reference to you.”</p>
<p>“It might be so; I cannot say. But all that
has no bearing on the poor lady’s death.”</p>
<p>“No. At what time did you go away from
here, Count Charlier?”</p>
<p>“At about midnight.”</p>
<p>“You went directly home?”</p>
<p>“To Mrs. Frothingham’s, where I am a house
guest, yes.”</p>
<p>“And you retired?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“And remained in your bed till morning?”</p>
<p>“But of a certainty, yes! What are you implying?
That I had a hand in this affair?”</p>
<p>“No, no; be calm, my dear sir. I ask you
but one question. Is this your glove?”</p>
<p>The Inspector took the glove from his pocket
and offered it to the Count.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_82">[82]</div>
<p>The Frenchman took it, examined it minutely
and without haste.</p>
<p>“No, sir,” he said, returning it; “that is not
my property.”</p>
<p>“Thank you, that is all,” and the Inspector
put the glove back in his pocket.</p>
<p>“There is no doubt as to the main facts,”
said the Inspector, a half hour later, as, with the
members of the family he summed up what had
been found out from all known sources. “The
assailant was most certainly a burglarious intruder;
the weapon, this ‘black-jack’; the motive,
robbery. Why the robbery was not
achieved and what is the meaning of the unexplained
circumstances of the whole affair, we do
not yet know. They are matters to be investigated,
but they cannot greatly affect the principal
conditions. You may be thankful, Miss
Stuart, that the sad death of your aunt was undoubtedly
painless; and also that the thief did
not succeed in his attempt to purloin the valuable
gems.”</p>
<p>The Inspector’s speech might seem cold-hearted,
but Brunt was a practical man, and he
was truly glad for himself that in addition to
finding the murderer he did not also have to
recover a fortune of rare jewels.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_83">[83]</div>
<p>“Now,” he went on, “as to the maid, Estelle.
I have talked with her, but she is so hysterical
and her stories so contradictory, that I am inclined
to the opinion that she has some sort of
guilty knowledge or at least suspicion of the intruder.
The man was stocking-footed, and it is
a pity, Miss Stuart, that you erased that footprint
on the floor! But it would have been of
doubtful use, I dare say. We have found faint
tracks of the powder on the steps of the staircase,
and though the last ones are almost indiscernible
they seem to lead through the butler’s
pantry, and to an exit by that window. But the
window was found fastened this morning, so, if
it was used as a means for the burglar’s getaway,
it must have been fastened afterward by
some person inside. Could this person have
been the maid, Estelle?”</p>
<p>“Sure it could!” exclaimed Haviland, who
was an interested listener. “That girl is a sly
one! I caught her this morning, trying to take
away that glass of milk. I told her to let it
alone.”</p>
<p>“Why?” asked the Inspector.</p>
<p>“Because I thought if she wanted to get it
away, there must be some reason for her to want
it! What was it?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_84">[84]</div>
<p>“Nonsense!” and Anita looked scornfully
at Gray; “naturally, Estelle would do up the
rooms, and would, of course, remove the remains
of Miss Lucy’s night luncheon.”</p>
<p>“But that’s just it!” said Haviland,
triumphantly: “she didn’t take the plate that
had had sandwiches on it! If she had, I should
have thought nothing of it. But she took the
glass of milk, in a furtive, stealthy way, that
made me look at her. She turned red, and
trembled, and I told her to set the glass down.
She pretended not to hear, so I told her again.
Then she obeyed. But she glared at me like a
tigress.”</p>
<p>“Oh, rubbish!” said Anita. “She was annoyed
at being interfered with in her work, and
perhaps fearful of being censured.”</p>
<p>“All right,” said Haviland, “then there’s no
harm done. If that girl is entirely innocent,
what I said won’t hurt her. But she looked to
me as if on a secret errand and a desperate
one.”</p>
<p>“What puzzles me is,” mused the Inspector,
“why she persists in saying that she left the
tray in good order in the room,—though it was
discovered an hour later, upset,—when we know
that Miss Carrington had been dead since, at
least, two or three o’clock.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_85">[85]</div>
<p>“Look here, Inspector,” and Haviland
frowned, “if the murder was committed at two
or three o’clock, how is it that Mrs. Frothingham
saw the intruder escaping at four or
later?”</p>
<p>“There is a discrepancy there,” admitted
Brunt, “but it may be explained away. The
doctors cannot be sure until the autopsy is completed
of the exact hour of death, and, too, the
lady next door may have made an error in
time.”</p>
<p>“Well, I’ll inform you that Estelle did upset
that tray herself,” said Pauline with an air
of finality.</p>
<p>“How do you know?” and Inspector Brunt
peered at her over his glasses.</p>
<p>“It was while Gray was telephoning for the
doctor,” said Pauline, reminiscently, “that I
looked carefully at that overturned tray.”</p>
<p>“I know it,” said Haviland, “I told you not
to touch anything.”</p>
<p>“I know that, but I did. I picked up from
the <i>débris</i>, this;” and Pauline held up to view
a tiny hairpin of the sort called ‘invisible.’</p>
<p>“It is Estelle’s,” she said; “see, it is the
glistening bronze color of her hair. Anita has
gold-colored ones, and I do not use these fine
wire ones. I use only shell. Moreover, I know
this is Estelle’s,—don’t you, Anita?”</p>
<p>“It may be.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_86">[86]</div>
<p>“It is. And its presence there, on the tray,
proves that she let the tray fall in her surprise
at seeing Aunt Lucy, and in her trembling excitement
loosened and dropped this hairpin.
Doubtless, she flung her hand up to her head—a
not unusual gesture of hers—and so dislodged
it.”</p>
<p>Brunt looked closely at the speaker.
“You’ve got it all fixed up, haven’t you, Miss
Stuart?”</p>
<p>Pauline flushed slightly. “I didn’t ‘fix it
up,’ as you call it, but I did gather, from what I
saw, that the truth must be as I have stated;
and in my anxiety to learn anything possible
as to the mystery of this crime, I secured what
may or may not be a bit of evidence. As Mr.
Haviland has said, if Estelle is entirely innocent
of any complicity in the matter, these things
can’t hurt her. But it would scarcely be possible
for her to have been so careless as to drop
a hairpin on the tray without noticing it, if she
were not startled and flurried by something
that took her mind and eyes entirely away from
her duties.”</p>
<p>“I think you are purposely making a great
deal out of nothing,” remarked Anita; “it
seems unfair, to say the least, to condemn the
poor girl on such trifling evidence.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_87">[87]</div>
<p>The talk was interrupted by the entrance of
the Coroner and the two doctors.</p>
<p>“It is found,” said Coroner Scofield, “that
the cause of Miss Carrington’s death was not the
blow on the head.”</p>
<p>The Inspector looked his amazement, and
the others sat with receptively blank countenances
waiting further disclosures.</p>
<p>“No,” went on Scofield, “we find in the
stomach unmistakable traces of poison.”</p>
<p>“Poison!” It was Anita’s frightened
whisper; “who would poison her?”</p>
<p>“What kind of poison?” asked Brunt.</p>
<p>“Aconitine; deadly and sure. It leaves little
trace, but certain tests reveal it beyond all
doubt. That is why we have been so long. The
tests are difficult of performance. But, it is
over, and we report that Miss Lucy Carrington
was poisoned by aconitine, administered
either by her own hand or another.”</p>
<p>“Oh, she never would poison herself!” cried
Anita; “who did it?”</p>
<p>“And the blow on the head?” said Inspector
Brunt, looking deeply perplexed.</p>
<p>“Her death, from poison, occurred at or near
two o’clock,” asserted the Coroner; “the blow
on the head was given after life had departed.”</p>
<p>“Incredible!” said Brunt.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_88">[88]</div>
<p>“It is, indeed, Inspector. But those are the
facts. The heavy blow fractured the skull, but
left no bruise or mark, nor was there any blood
from the cut scalp. In addition we have the
poison found in the system, and the death symptoms
of quiet, placid dissolution which are consequent
always on that particular poison.”</p>
<p>“Could it have been self-administered?”
asked Brunt.</p>
<p>“Not by Miss Carrington,” said Doctor
Stanton, decidedly. “The lady has been my
patient for years, and she had an absolute abhorrence
of all sorts of drugs or medicines.
She made more fuss over taking a simple powder
than a spoiled child. I have often prescribed
for her, knowing full well she would not
take my prescriptions because of her detestation
of taking medicine. When remedies have been
really necessary, I have had to administer them
while with her, and a difficult task it was. Moreover,
my patient was not of the temperament or
disposition to seek death for herself, nor had
she any reason to do so. No; the case is murder;
the poison was administered by some one who
wished for her death and deliberately set out to
accomplish it,—and succeeded.”</p>
<p>“Is the action of this poison instantaneous?”
asked Brunt.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_89">[89]</div>
<p>“No; death ensues about a half hour to an
hour after the dose is taken into the system.”</p>
<p>“Then, we gather that the poison was taken
in the neighborhood of one o’clock, last night.”</p>
<p>“Yes,” agreed the Coroner, “about one
o’clock.”</p>
<p>“About one o’clock!” whispered Anita, in
an awe-struck, gasping way, and her great blue
eyes stared dazedly into the dark ones of
Pauline.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_90">[90]</div>
<h2 id="c7"><span class="small">VII</span> <br/>THE INQUEST</h2>
<p>Next morning the inquest was proceeding.
The great living-room at Garden Steps was
crowded with listeners, drawn hither by sympathy,
interest or curiosity. And each class
found ample to satisfy its motive. The mere fact
of being within that exclusive home, within those
heretofore inaccessible doors, was enough to
thrill and delight many, and observation and
scrutiny were as well repaid as was the listening
to the astounding revelations that were
poured into their ears.</p>
<p>Coroner Scofield’s jury was composed of
intelligent men, who were eagerly receptive to
the appalling facts narrated to them and the
curiously bizarre bits of evidence that became
known as the witnesses were questioned.</p>
<p>Dr. Stanton told of his being called to the
house, and his discoveries and conclusions. He
admitted that he assumed death was caused by
the blow on the head, but claimed that it was a
pardonable error in view of the fact that such
a blow had been given. He affirmed, and Dr.
Moore corroborated it, that the autopsy showed
that death was caused by aconitine poison,
administered, either by the deceased or another,
at an hour not earlier than one o’clock, and
probably soon thereafter. The terrible blow
that had fractured the skull had been given after
life had been for some time extinct.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_91">[91]</div>
<p>Dr. Stanton asserted emphatically his late
patient’s detestation of drugs or medicines of
any sort, adducing thereby the extreme improbability
of the poison having been self-administered.
Moreover, the temperament and
disposition of the late Miss Carrington entirely
evinced a love of life and desire to prolong it
by means of any device or assistance the doctor
might give.</p>
<p>Pauline was called next, and a little flutter of
excitement in the audience greeted her appearance.</p>
<p>Exceedingly dignified, but of a sweet, gracious
mien, she at once received the silent approval
of the crowd. Her black gown, its collar
of sheer white organdy slightly open at the
throat, well suited her pale, beautiful face and
her dark hair and eyes. To-day, her eyes
seemed fathomless. At times, gazing intently
at the Coroner until they almost disconcerted
him; and then, hidden by veiling lids, whose
long lashes fell suddenly, as if to conceal further
disclosures.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_92">[92]</div>
<p>On the whole, Pauline was not a satisfactory
witness. She told, in most straightforward
way, of leaving the breakfast table to go to her
aunt’s room and of finding there the dead body.
She told clearly all the circumstances of the upset
tray, the spilled powder and the eccentric
garb of Miss Carrington herself. But questions
as to her opinion of these facts brought little
response.</p>
<p>“You left Miss Carrington at half-past
twelve?” asked Coroner Scofield.</p>
<p>“Not so late, I think,” returned Pauline;
“probably at quarter or twenty minutes past
twelve,—I am not sure.”</p>
<p>“How was she then dressed?”</p>
<p>“In the gown she had worn during the
evening.”</p>
<p>“And her jewels?”</p>
<p>“When I left my aunt, she was wearing her
pearls and the other jewelry she had worn with
her evening dress. Some brooches and rings
and bracelets.”</p>
<p>“But not so much as she had on when you
discovered her in the morning?”</p>
<p>“Not nearly so much.”</p>
<p>“How do you account for this?”</p>
<p>“I don’t account for it. To me it is exceedingly
mysterious.”</p>
<p>“And the paper snake round her neck?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_93">[93]</div>
<p>“I have no idea by whom such a thing could
have been brought to my aunt. But I am positive
she never put it on herself. Nor can I think
she would allow it to come near her if she were
alive,—or conscious,—or, had power to scream
for help. Any one knowing my aunt’s fear and
horror of anything reptilian will agree to this.”</p>
<p>“It seems evident,” said the Coroner,
thoughtfully, “that some intruder entered Miss
Carrington’s room, at or near one o’clock.
That this intruder in some manner induced Miss
Carrington to swallow the poison, whether conscious
of her act or not. That the intruder subsequently,
and for some reason, placed the snake
round the neck of the victim, and, later still,
brutally gave her a stunning blow with the
black-jack which was found, and thereby fractured
her skull. Granting these assumptions,
can you, Miss Stuart, give us any information
that would lead to discovery of the hand that
wrought this havoc?”</p>
<p>“Not any,” and Pauline raised her great
eyes a moment to Scofield’s face and slowly
dropped them again.</p>
<p>“Then can you not express an opinion or
suggest a theory that might account for such
strange happenings, at least, in part?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_94">[94]</div>
<p>“No,” said Pauline, slowly; “I have no idea,
nor can I imagine why my aunt should be so
elaborately arrayed and seated in an easy chair
in front of her mirror. It is contrary to all her
customs or habits.”</p>
<p>“Could she have been killed first and could
the jewels and adornments have been added
afterward?” asked the Coroner of the doctors.</p>
<p>“No,” replied Dr. Moore; “the whole condition
of the body and clothing make such a theory
practically impossible.”</p>
<p>“Quite impossible,” added Dr. Stanton;
“and, too, what would be the sense of such a
proceeding?”</p>
<p>“We are establishing the facts of the proceedings,
not the sense of them,” returned the Coroner,
a little testily, for he was at his wits’ end
even to make a beginning in this strange case.</p>
<p>“At least,” he went on, “we have the facts
and the approximate time of the crime; have
you, Miss Stuart, any suspicion of who the
murderer can be?”</p>
<p>The question was shot out suddenly. If its
intent was to startle the witness, it certainly
succeeded. Pauline Stuart turned even whiter
than she had been, and she caught her breath
quickly and audibly as she flashed a frightened
glance at Gray Haviland. It was by no means
an accusing glance, though many who saw it,
eager for a direction in which to cast their suspicions,
took it for such.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_95">[95]</div>
<p>But Pauline controlled herself immediately.
“Certainly not,” she said coldly. “That is, I
can have no suspicion of the murderer’s identity.
It was, of course, a midnight intruder, of
the criminal class. I have no individual acquaintances
who use or possess the weapon that
was employed in this crime.”</p>
<p>“The black-jack is an auxiliary only. The
poison may have been administered by one not
versed in the ways of professional criminals.
You admit that, I suppose?”</p>
<p>“It is no doubt true,” said Pauline, icily,
“that poison may be given by a person not belonging
to the criminal classes. I fail to see, however,
how that fact affects the matter in hand.”</p>
<p>“It may well affect it. Since Miss Carrington
was killed by a deadly poison, we must conclude
that the black-jack assault was made with
the intention of concealing the poisoning and
making it appear that the blow caused the death.
There seems to me no other way to account for
the conditions that confront us.”</p>
<p>A silence followed this. Its truth was patent
to everybody. Clearly, the poisoner had delivered
the blow, for no one else would attack
a victim already dead. And a plausible reason
would be the hope that the poisoning would
pass unnoticed in view of the other apparent
cause of death.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_96">[96]</div>
<p>“And it points to the work of an amateur,”
went on Scofield; “a professional criminal
would know that the autopsy would disclose the
earlier crime.”</p>
<p>Pauline lost her nerve. “I don’t know anything
about it!” she cried, and sank back into
her seat, her face buried in her hands.</p>
<p>Coroner Scofield was a man of tact. “It is
entirely natural, Miss Stuart,” he said, “that
this thought should overcome you. But we must
realize the fact that the theory of a professional
burglar is practically untenable, because nothing
was stolen. A burglar’s motive could be
only robbery, and this did not take place. Nor
can we think that a burglar was frightened away,
before he could appropriate the jewels. For,
after giving the poison, and before the blow was
given, sufficient time elapsed for a successful
getaway to be made. Nor would the burglar
have been at pains to cover up his poisoning
work, for having achieved his end, he would
have secured his booty and made escape. So, it
is evident that the motive, not being robbery, is
as yet unknown, and may be obscure and complicated.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_97">[97]</div>
<p>“What could it have been?” asked Pauline,
her composure regained, her voice low and even.</p>
<p>Scofield looked at her. “It is said, Miss
Stuart, that the only motives for murder are
love, revenge or gain. Can you imagine any one
of these directed toward your aunt?”</p>
<p>Pauline replied tranquilly. Evidently she
had fully recovered her poise. “I can think of
no one who could have killed my aunt for love;
it is improbable that she has ever done any one
such wrong as to call for such a deed in revenge;
as to gain, if you mean pecuniary gain, all the
legatees mentioned in her will may be said to
have that motive.”</p>
<p>Pauline’s manner and tones were so impersonal,
so scathingly ironic as to amount to a
disclaimer for all the legatees. Her way of suggesting
it made it seem so far removed from
possibility that it was far more emphatic than
any denial could have been.</p>
<p>But Coroner Scofield was as unmoved as his
witness.</p>
<p>“Quite so,” he said coolly; “and therefore
inquiries must be made. Did you, Miss Stuart,
after leaving your aunt soon after midnight see
or hear anything unusual or suspicious?”</p>
<p>“What do you mean by unusual or suspicious?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_98">[98]</div>
<p>“I mean did you see or hear anything, anything
at all, that you could not explain to yourself
as being in any way connected with the
tragedy we are investigating?”</p>
<p>Before answering, Pauline looked in turn at
all the members of the household. Haviland
slowly turned his head as if to look at something
across the room, and as slowly brought it back
to its previous position.</p>
<p>“I did not,” said Pauline, looking straight
at the Coroner.</p>
<p>“That is all,” said Scofield, briefly, and the
next witness was called.</p>
<p>This was the maid, Estelle. Her eyes were
red with weeping, but she was not hysterical
now, or incoherent. She answered tersely questions
as to Miss Carrington’s habits and as to
her words and actions during the maid’s last interview
with her.</p>
<p>“I left her at about quarter of one,” the
witness deposed; “I had given her the Oriental
negligée, of which she is fond. I offered to take
down her hair and put away her jewels, but she
declined those services, and bade me leave her.”</p>
<p>“She was wearing, when you left her, only
the jewels she had worn during the evening?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_99">[99]</div>
<p>“Only those, sir. When I changed her evening
gown for the boudoir robe, she bade me replace
such jewels as I had already taken off her.
She kept on her rings, bracelets and her long
rope of pearls while I changed her costume.”</p>
<p>“And then she dismissed you for the night?”</p>
<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
<p>“Where was she then? Sitting before the
mirror?”</p>
<p>“No, sir. She stood in the middle of the
floor.”</p>
<p>“Was she in an amiable mood?”</p>
<p>“She was not. Because I offered to assist
her further, she ordered me from the room in
anger.”</p>
<p>“Ah, in anger! Was Miss Carrington often
angry with you?”</p>
<p>“Indeed, yes; as she was with everybody.”</p>
<p>“Confine your answers to your own experience.
You prepared a night luncheon for your
mistress?”</p>
<p>“Yes, sir,” and now Estelle’s voice trembled
and her eyes rolled apprehensively.</p>
<p>“What was it?”</p>
<p>“Two small sandwiches and a glass of
milk.”</p>
<p>“What sort of sandwiches?”</p>
<p>“Caviare, sir.”</p>
<p>“Ah, yes. And why did you put a large dose
of bromide in the glass of milk?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_100">[100]</div>
<p>“Did it kill her?” and Estelle screamed out
her query. Pauline and Anita looked at one
another. It was the same question Estelle had
asked of them.</p>
<p>“An overdose of bromide may be fatal,”
parried the Coroner, not answering the question
directly. “Why did you do it?”</p>
<p>“I didn’t do it,” and the French girl shrugged
her shoulders; “why should I poison my
mistress? She was quick-tempered, but I was
used to that.”</p>
<p>“Don’t be stupid,” said the Coroner; “the
bromide didn’t poison Miss Carrington, for, in
the first place, she didn’t take it. The glass of
milk was found next morning untouched, though
the sandwiches were gone. Therefore, the bromide
in the milk was found. Why did you put
it in?”</p>
<p>“<i>I</i> didn’t do it,” reiterated the maid. “Look
higher up for that!”</p>
<p>“What do you mean?”</p>
<p>“I mention no names, but somebody must
have done it, if bromide was found in that milk.”</p>
<p>“But you tried to get the glass away next
morning, without being seen.”</p>
<p>“Who says I did?”</p>
<p>“Never mind that; you were seen. Why?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_101">[101]</div>
<p>“Well, sir, if I thought anybody was going
to get into trouble because of it, I was only too
glad to help, if I could, by removing it before it
was noticed.” Estelle spoke slowly, as if weighing
her words, and her furtive glances at
Pauline bore only one significance. It was palpably
apparent that she suspected Miss Stuart
of the deed, and out of kindness had tried to remove
the incriminating evidence.</p>
<p>Pauline stared at her with a glance that went
through her or over her or around her, but gave
not the slightest attention to the speaker.</p>
<p>“Did you put bromide in your aunt’s glass of
milk, Miss Stuart?” asked the Coroner, and
Pauline said, calmly, “Certainly not.”</p>
<p>Mr. Scofield sighed. It was a difficult matter
to get at the truth when the witnesses were
clever women, in whose veracity he had not complete
confidence.</p>
<p>He gave up Estelle for the moment, and
called Gray Haviland.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_102">[102]</div>
<p>The young man’s appearance gave every
promise of frankness and sincerity. He detailed
the circumstances precisely as Pauline
had told them. He denied having heard or seen
anything suspicious during the night. He referred
to the Coroner’s list of motives for
crime, and added that he agreed with Miss
Stuart that the present case could scarcely be
ascribed to love or revenge. If the murder was
committed for gain, it was, of course, a formal
necessity to question all the beneficiaries of
Miss Carrington’s will, but he was sure that all
such inheritors were quite willing to be questioned.
For his part, he believed that the
criminal was some enemy of Miss Carrington,
unknown to her immediate household, and he
suggested that such a one be searched for.</p>
<p>“You’ve got that glove,” he reminded,
“that was found clasped in the hand of the murdered
woman. Why not trace that; or endeavor
to learn in some way the reason for the many
peculiar circumstances; or discover, at least, a
way to look for further evidence; rather than
to vaguely suspect those who lived under Miss
Carrington’s roof?”</p>
<p>“I am not asking your assistance in conducting
this inquiry, Mr. Haviland,” and the
Coroner spoke shortly; “but pursuing my own
plan of obtaining evidence in my own way.
Will you kindly answer questions without comment
on them?”</p>
<p>“Oh, all right; fire away. Only remember,
that we relatives and friends are just as much
interested in clearing up this mystery as you
are, and we want to help, if we can be allowed to
do so intelligently.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_103">[103]</div>
<p>Asked again if he saw or heard anything unusual
in the night, Haviland replied, “You said
‘suspicious’ the other time. I did see something
<i>unusual</i>. I saw Estelle go stealthily downstairs
at three <span class="sc">A.M.</span> That’s unusual, but I don’t go so
far as to call it suspicious.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_104">[104]</div>
<h2 id="c8"><span class="small">VIII</span> <br/>ANITA’S STORY</h2>
<p>Instead of showing surprise at this statement,
the Coroner broke the breathless silence
that followed it, by saying:</p>
<p>“Will you please explain what you mean by
‘stealthily?’”</p>
<p>“Just what I say,” returned Haviland,
bluntly. “She went slowly, now and then pausing
to listen, twice drawing back around a corner
and peeping out, and then coming forth again;
she wore no shoes and carried no light; she
went down the big staircase in the manner I
have described, and after about ten minutes, returned
in the same fashion. That’s what I mean
by stealthily.”</p>
<p>“What was your errand?” asked Scofield of
Estelle.</p>
<p>“Nothing. I didn’t go,” she replied, coolly.</p>
<p>“She tells an untruth,” said Gray, calmly.
“She did go, just as I have described. But it
was doubtless on an innocent errand. I have
no idea she was implicated in Miss Carrington’s
death. I am sure it is of casual explanation,—or,
I was sure, until Estelle denied it.”</p>
<p>“How was it you chanced to see her?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_105">[105]</div>
<p>“I was wakeful, and I was prowling around
to find something to read. I went out in the hall
and got a magazine from the table, and had returned
to my room and was just closing the door,
when I saw a white figure glide across the hall.
She passed through a moonlit space or I could
not have seen her. She was wrapped in a light
or white kimono thing, and I should never have
thought of it again if it were not for what has
happened.”</p>
<p>“You knew it to be this Estelle?”</p>
<p>“Yes; her red hair was hanging in a braid.”</p>
<p>“’Tisn’t red!” snapped Estelle, but Mr. Scofield
silenced her with a frown.</p>
<p>“Well, auburn, then,” said Haviland, easily.
“You may as well own up, Estelle; what did you
go down for?”</p>
<p>“I didn’t go,” repeated the maid, obstinately,
and no cross-questioning could prevail
on her to admit otherwise.</p>
<p>“All right,” and Haviland shrugged his
shoulders; “I suppose it doesn’t matter, as the
crime was committed about one o’clock. It’s
up to you, Mr. Coroner, to find some person who
acted suspiciously nearer that time. And, by
the way, as man of business of this estate, unless
some worthwhile evidence is forthcoming pretty
soon, I’m going to round up a detective or two
who will get somewhere.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_106">[106]</div>
<p>“Give us a little more time, Mr. Haviland,”
said Scofield, suavely, “this inquest is only
begun.”</p>
<p>“Well, get it over with, and then, if the truth
hasn’t come to light, I’ll take a hand.”</p>
<p>Miss Frayne was called next, and Anita, with
a look of importance on her pretty face, came
forward.</p>
<p>Her evidence, at first, was merely a repetition
of that already heard, and she corroborated
Pauline’s recital of the scene as the two girls
bade Miss Carrington good-night.</p>
<p>“And then?” prompted the Coroner.</p>
<p>“Then I went to my room, but I didn’t retire.
I sat thinking over what Miss Carrington had
said to me. And as I thought about it, I concluded
that this time I was really dismissed from
her secretaryship. And that made me feel very
sorry, for it is a good position and I’ve no wish
to lose it. So,—after a time, I began to think I
would go to Miss Carrington’s room and if she
were still up, I would beg her forgiveness.”</p>
<p>“Forgiveness for what?”</p>
<p>“For any fancied grievance she might have
against me. I have always tried to please her,
but she was, er,—difficult, and it was not easy
to do the right thing at all times.”</p>
<p>“Did you go to her room?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_107">[107]</div>
<p>“I went to the door——”</p>
<p>“At what time?”</p>
<p>“Soon after one o’clock. Not more than five
or ten minutes after.”</p>
<p>There was a rustle of excitement. The
poison was said to be administered at about one!
Did this fair doll-like girl know the secret of the
tragedy?</p>
<p>“Proceed, Miss Frayne; tell the story of
anything you saw at that time.”</p>
<p>“I saw nothing. But I heard a great deal.”</p>
<p>“What was it?”</p>
<p>“The door of Miss Carrington’s room was
closed, and I was about to tap at it, when I heard
talking inside. I paused, and I listened, in
order to discover if her maid was still with her,
or some one else. If it had been Estelle, I
should have tapped for admittance. But it was
not.”</p>
<p>“Who was it?”</p>
<p>“I cannot say. The voice I heard distinctly
was that of Miss Carrington herself. Her voice
was high-pitched, and of what is called a carrying
sort. The things she said were so strange,
I lingered, listening, for I was so surprised I
couldn’t help it.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_108">[108]</div>
<p>“First, I heard her say, quite plainly, ‘Your
face is the most beautiful I have ever seen! I
wish mine were as beautiful.’ I assumed, then,
she must be talking to Miss Stuart, for surely
she would not say that to her maid. Then she
said, ‘But, to-morrow, I shall be forever freed
from this homely face of mine.’”</p>
<p>“Miss Frayne, this is very singular! Are
you sure you heard correctly?”</p>
<p>“I am sure. But there is more. She next
said, ‘To-morrow you will be glad!—<i>glad!</i>’ It
was almost a scream, that. And she went on,
‘To-morrow all these jewels will be yours,—if
you—ah, but <i>will</i> you?’ and then her voice
trailed off faintly, and I could hear no more.”</p>
<p>“You heard nothing more at all?”</p>
<p>“Yes; I waited,—oh, I admit I was eavesdropping,
but it was so strange I couldn’t help
it,—there was silence. It may well be some one
else was replying to her, but I could not make
out any other person’s words. A low voice would
not be audible like a high-pitched one. But after
a moment, Miss Carrington resumed; she said,
‘I shall change my will. Not Carr’s half, that
must stand. But the other half shall never go to
a niece who has no affection for me!’ Again I
heard nothing, for the responses were inaudible.
Then Miss Carrington said, in a musing tone:
‘I have already willed you ten thousand dollars
of those United States bonds, but——’ And
then, after quite a long pause, Miss Carrington
cried out, not loudly, but tensely, ‘Henri, Henri!
<i>you</i> are the mark I aim at!’ That frightened
me so, I ran swiftly back to my room, and locked
the door.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_109">[109]</div>
<p>“You assumed Henri to be Count Charlier?”</p>
<p>“I had no other construction to put upon the
words.”</p>
<p>“You thought the gentleman was in Miss
Carrington’s room?”</p>
<p>“I couldn’t think that! And yet, it sounded
as if she were speaking to him, not of him.”</p>
<p>“This is a very strange story, Miss Frayne.
Have you mentioned these things you overheard
to any one before this?”</p>
<p>“No. I have thought them over, and concluded
it was best to tell the story first to you.”</p>
<p>“And quite right. It is, then, your opinion
that there was another person in Miss Carrington’s
room, to whom she was speaking?”</p>
<p>“It seemed so to me.”</p>
<p>“But you did not hear this other person’s
voice?”</p>
<p>Anita paused a moment and then said: “Not
distinctly.”</p>
<p>“Did you hear it at all?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_110">[110]</div>
<p>“I cannot say. When I did not hear Miss
Carrington’s voice clearly, there were sounds
that might have been another person or her own
voice speaking more inaudibly.”</p>
<p>“Might it not be that she was merely talking
to herself,—soliloquizing?”</p>
<p>“It could not have been that. She spoke
definitely and decidedly <i>to</i> some one when she
said ‘Your face is beautiful,’ and when she said,
‘I have willed you ten thousand dollars,’ indeed,
every thing she said was as if spoken to some
hearer; not as one who talks to herself.”</p>
<p>“After you regained your room, did you
leave it again?”</p>
<p>“No, I did not.”</p>
<p>“H’m. Now, are you positive, Miss Frayne,
that all these speeches were said just as you have
repeated them? It is a great strain on the
memory to repeat accurately a conversation as
long as the one you have just rehearsed.”</p>
<p>“The speeches I heard are burned into my
brain. I could not forget them if I would. I
may have erred in some minor or unimportant
words, but the most of what I heard is precisely
as I have repeated it. Indeed, so thoroughly
was I amazed at it all, I wrote it down as soon as
I reached my room. I had then no thought of—of
what was going to happen, but Miss Carrington
had made peculiar remarks during the
evening about something happening to her, and
in connection with that the words I heard seemed
so remarkable,—not to say uncanny,—that I
made a note of them. This is not an unusual
habit with me. I often make notes of conversations,
as it has been useful in my services as
secretary.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_111">[111]</div>
<p>“As how?”</p>
<p>“If a caller in a social or business way had
conversation with Miss Carrington, and I was
present, I often made a record, in case she asked
me later just what had been said.”</p>
<p>“I see. And how do you interpret the words,
‘Henri, you are the mark I aim at?’”</p>
<p>“I can only think that Miss Carrington was
in favor of considering a marriage between herself
and the Count.”</p>
<p>“You made use of the word ‘uncanny.’ Do
you imagine that Miss Carrington had any foreboding
of her approaching doom?”</p>
<p>“When I heard her say, ‘To-morrow I will
be forever freed from this homely face of mine,’
and ‘to-morrow all these jewels will be yours,’
I couldn’t help thinking,—after the discovery of
her death,—that she must have anticipated it.”</p>
<p>“Did her voice sound like the despairing one
of a person about to die?”</p>
<p>“On the contrary, it sounded full of life and
animation.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_112">[112]</div>
<p>“Did she seem angry with the person to
whom she was speaking?”</p>
<p>“At times, yes. And, again, no. Her voice
showed varying emotions as she talked on.”</p>
<p>“Her speech was not continuous, then?”</p>
<p>“Not at all. It was broken, and in snatches.
But, remember, I could not hear all of what she
said, and the other person or persons not at all.”</p>
<p>“Did you not catch a word from the other
voice?”</p>
<p>“I cannot say. Much, in a low tone, that I
could not hear clearly, might have been Miss
Carrington’s voice or another’s. The door was
closed, and as soon as I realized there was some
one there, not Estelle, I had no thought of knocking,
and I soon went away. I ought to have
gone away sooner, and would have done so, but
I was so amazed and puzzled I stayed on involuntarily.”</p>
<p>“Your story, Miss Frayne, is very extraordinary.
Can you suggest, from what you heard,
who might have been in the room with Miss
Carrington?”</p>
<p>“I can not, nor do I wish to. I have told you
what I heard, it is for you to make deductions or
discoveries.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_113">[113]</div>
<p>“I wish to say a word, Mr. Coroner,” and
Pauline Stuart, with her dark eyes blazing, rose
to her feet. “I am sorry to say this, but I must
ask you to hesitate before you put too much faith
in the amazing tale you have just listened to.
I am sure Miss Frayne could not have heard all
that nonsense! It is impossible, on the face of
it, that my aunt should have received any one
in her room after her maid left her. It is incredible
that she should have made all those
ridiculous and meaningless remarks! And it is
despicable for any woman to imply or hint that
Miss Carrington was receiving a gentleman
caller! I am surprised that you even listened
to what must be the ravings of a disordered
mind!”</p>
<p>Pauline looked at Anita like an avenging
goddess. But the darts of scorn from her dark
eyes were met and returned in kind from the big
blue ones of the secretary.</p>
<p>“I resent your tone and your words,” said
Anita, deliberately; “but since you choose to
adopt that attitude, I will go on to say what I
had intended not to reveal, that I saw you coming
from your aunt’s room, after the conversation
I have told of took place.”</p>
<p>“Wait a minute,” said the Coroner; “you
said that immediately after hearing the alleged
conversation you went at once to your room,
and did not leave it again.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_114">[114]</div>
<p>“Nor did I. But a few minutes later, unable
to restrain my curiosity, I opened my door, and
looked out. My position then commanded a full
view of the hall, and I saw Miss Stuart go from
her aunt’s room to her own.”</p>
<p>Pauline looked at the speaker. Coldly her
glance swept back to the Coroner, and she said:
“I deny that I was in my aunt’s room after leaving
it at midnight in company with Miss Frayne.
But she forces me to tell that <i>I</i> saw <i>her</i> going
away from it at exactly quarter past one.”</p>
<p>“How do you fix the time so accurately?”</p>
<p>“I was sitting in the upper hall,—it is really
a sitting-room, at the bay-windowed end,—looking
at the moon. I, too, had been disturbed at
my aunt’s attitude, and her threats to send me
away to-day, and I had gone to the hall window-seat,
a favorite haunt of mine, and had sat there
for a half hour or more.”</p>
<p>“Could any one going through the hall see
you?”</p>
<p>“Probably not, as the draperies are heavy,
and I was in the deep window-seat. I was thinking
I would go to my room, and then I saw Miss
Frayne come from my aunt’s room and go to her
own.”</p>
<p>“Are you sure she came from the room?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_115">[115]</div>
<p>“She was closing the door, her hand was on
the knob. She did not see me, I am sure, for I
drew back in the window and watched her. And
just then I heard the hall clock chime the quarter
after one.”</p>
<p>“You didn’t see Miss Frayne when she went
to Miss Carrington’s room?”</p>
<p>“No; I suppose I was then looking out of the
deep window.”</p>
<p>“Nor did you hear her?”</p>
<p>“No, the rugs are thick and a light foot-fall
makes no sound.”</p>
<p>“What did you next do?”</p>
<p>“I went—I went straight to my own room.”</p>
<p>The slight hesitation told against Pauline.
All through her testimony, all through her arraignment
of Anita,—for it amounted to that,—she
had been cool, calm and imperturbable. But
now a momentary hesitation of speech, added
perhaps, to the circumstantial story of Anita
Frayne, caused a wave of doubt,—not enough to
call suspicion,—but a questioning attitude to
form in the minds of many of the audience.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_116">[116]</div>
<p>To whom, if not Miss Stuart, could Miss Carrington’s
remarks about beauty have been addressed?
It was well known that Miss Lucy
adored beauty and had all her life lamented her
own lack of it. This was no secret woe of the
poor lady’s. To any one who would listen, she
would complain of her hard lot in having all
the gifts of the gods except good looks. To
whom else would she say ‘To-morrow all these
jewels will be yours,—if you—ah, but <i>will</i> you?’</p>
<p>And yet, after all, it did not make sense.
Was it not far more likely to be a figment of Miss
Frayne’s clever mind, for what purpose who
might say?</p>
<p>At any rate, their stories were contradictory
and moreover were garbled.</p>
<p>The jurymen sighed. The case had been
mysterious enough before, now it was becoming
inexplicable.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_117">[117]</div>
<h2 id="c9"><span class="small">IX</span> <br/>FURTHER TESTIMONY</h2>
<p>Count Henri Charlier was being questioned,
and he was distinctly ill at ease. His
French <i>savoir faire</i> was not proof against definite
inquiries as to his intentions regarding the
late Miss Carrington, and indefinite allusions concerning
his movements on the night of her death.</p>
<p>He had related, straightforwardly enough,
his visit at Garden Steps that evening and his
departure at or about midnight. He denied his
engagement of marriage, but admitted that he
had paid Miss Carrington such attentions as
might lead her to suspect an attachment.</p>
<p>“You did not return to this house after leaving
on Tuesday night?”</p>
<p>“Most assuredly not.”</p>
<p>“You were not in Miss Carrington’s boudoir
at one o’clock or thereabouts?”</p>
<p>Count Charlier’s black eyes snapped. But
by a successful effort he controlled his indignation,
and said, simply, “I was not.”</p>
<p>“But she was heard to address you.”</p>
<p>“Impossible, as I was not there.”</p>
<p>“She distinctly declared that you were the
mark she aimed at. What construction do you
put upon those words?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_118">[118]</div>
<p>“It is not for me to boast of my attraction for
a lady.”</p>
<p>Count Charlier simpered a little, and Gray
Haviland looked at him with a frown of undisguised
scorn. Haviland had never liked the
Count, indeed, he even doubted his right to the
title, and especially had he feared a marriage
between him and Miss Lucy. And, granting
that this feeling was partly due to a consideration
of his own interests, Haviland also distrusted
the Frenchman and doubted Miss Lucy’s
happiness as his wife.</p>
<p>“Did Miss Carrington leave you a bequest of
ten thousand dollars in United States bonds?”
went on the Coroner.</p>
<p>“I—I don’t know,” and the Count stammered
in an embarrassed way.</p>
<p>“You do know!” shouted Haviland; “the
will has been read, and you know perfectly well
that such a bequest was left to you.”</p>
<p>“Why did you deny the knowledge?” asked
Scofield, sternly.</p>
<p>“I’m—I’m not sure——”</p>
<p>“You are sure!” stormed Gray. “Now
where were you when Miss Carrington spoke
those words to you? If not in her boudoir,
then on the balcony outside the window, perhaps.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_119">[119]</div>
<p>“Absurd,” said the Coroner.</p>
<p>“Not at all,” said Gray; “that window opens
on a balcony enclosed by glass. It is easily
reached from outside by a small staircase, mostly
used in summer, but always available. How
could Miss Carrington speak to the Count concerning
the bonds and concerning her infatuation
for himself, which is no secret, unless he
were there before her? And how could he be in
the room—in her boudoir—unknown to the servants?
Moreover, Mr. Coroner, I believe the
glove found in Miss Carrington’s hand to be the
property of Count Charlier.”</p>
<p>“But no!” cried the witness, excitedly; “I
have repeatedly disclaimed that glove. It is not
mine, I know not whose it is. I know nothing
of this sad affair, whatever. If the money is left
to me, as I have been told, it is a—a surprise to
me.”</p>
<p>“Surprise nothing!” murmured Haviland,
but he said no more to the Count.</p>
<p>“If my story might be told now,—” ventured
Mrs. Frothingham.</p>
<p>After a moment’s hesitation, Coroner Scofield
decided to let her tell it, as having a possible
bearing on Count Charlier’s testimony.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_120">[120]</div>
<p>The rather stunning-looking widow was fashionably
dressed, and she fluttered with an air
of importance as she took the stand. She related
again the story she had told of the supposed
burglar, whom she saw leaving the living-room
by way of a window, at four o’clock on Wednesday
morning.</p>
<p>“How can you be so sure it was a burglar?”
asked Scofield.</p>
<p>“Oh, he looked like one. All huddled up,
you know, and his face buried between a high
coat collar and a drawn-down cap. And he
walked slyly,—sort of glided among the shrubs
and trees, as if avoiding notice. No man on
legitimate business would skulk like that.”</p>
<p>“Might it not have been Count Charlier?”
asked the Coroner, bluntly.</p>
<p>“Certainly not!” and Mrs. Frothingham
gave a little shriek. “The Count is a slim and
elegant figure; this was a stocky, burly man; a
marauder, I know.”</p>
<p>“It may be,” said the Coroner, wearily. “It
may be that a burglar was concealed in the
house, or let in by a servant, and that he attacked
Miss Carrington as she was seated at her
dressing table. It seems impossible that he
should have administered poison to her, however,
and the conjoined circumstances may indicate
collusion between——”</p>
<p>“Between whom?” asked Inspector Brunt.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_121">[121]</div>
<p>“I don’t know,” confessed Scofield. “Every
way I try to think it out, I ran up against an impassable
barrier.”</p>
<p>“That’s what I say,” began Haviland; “it is
a most involved case. I shall cable Carrington
Loria for authority to employ an expert detective.”</p>
<p>“Why cable him?” asked Pauline; “I am
equally in authority now. Carr and myself each
receive half the residuary estate of Aunt Lucy,
and, of course, I am as anxious to find the—the
murderer, as Carr can possibly be.”</p>
<p>“Well, somebody will have to authorize it
who is willing to pay for it. As man of business
in this home, I am willing to attend to all such
matters, but I must have authority.”</p>
<p>“You seem to me a little premature, Mr.
Haviland,” commented the Inspector. “Perhaps
when the inquest is concluded, it may not be
necessary to call on any other detective than our
own Mr. Hardy.”</p>
<p>“Perhaps not,” agreed Haviland; “but unless
you people all wake up, you’re not going to
get anywhere. I admit the getting is difficult,
but that’s just the reason a wise sleuth should be
called in before the trails grow cold.”</p>
<p>And then the Coroner returned to his task of
questioning Mrs. Frothingham.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_122">[122]</div>
<p>The widow was not definitely helpful. Her
statements were often contradictory in minor details,
and when she corrected them they seemed
to lose in weight. She stuck to the main points,
however, that by the help of a strong field-glass
she had discerned, in the bright moonlight, a
man leave by way of the French window, at four
o’clock, and had seen him make his way stealthily
out by the great entrance gates of the place.</p>
<p>Cross-questioning on this brought no variations,
and the jurymen wagged their heads in
belief of her story.</p>
<p>But her accounts of her own doings on Tuesday
evening were vague and indefinite.</p>
<p>“I was in my own home all the evening,”
she said at one time; and again, “I went out for
a short walk at eleven o’clock.” This last in
refutation of Haskins, the Carrington butler,
who deposed to having seen the lady walk across
the lawns of Garden Steps.</p>
<p>“Where did you walk?”</p>
<p>“Oh, just around my own place; and for a
moment I strolled over here because the Steps
looked so beautiful in the moonlight.”</p>
<p>“You were alone?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_123">[123]</div>
<p>“I was. I have no house guests at present,
save the Count; and as my brother, who lives
with me, is on a Western trip, I was alone, and
I walked about to kill time until Count Charlier
should return after his bridge game over here.”</p>
<p>“Did you walk near the house, while on the
Garden Steps’ estate?” asked Scofield, scenting
a possible espionage of her titled visitor.</p>
<p>“Oh, no!” and the witness bristled with indignation;
“why should I! I was not really an
acquaintance of Miss Carrington, merely a
neighbor.”</p>
<p>“Beg pardon, ma’am, but I saw you on the
conservatory verandah,” said Haskins, in a
deprecatory way.</p>
<p>“That is not true, Mr. Coroner,” said the
lady, glancing scornfully at the butler. “I beg
you will not accept a servant’s statement in
preference to mine!”</p>
<p>“You are sure of this, Haskins?” said the Inspector
gravely.</p>
<p>“Yes, sir. Sure, sir.” and the man looked
doggedly certain, though a little scared.</p>
<p>“And you deny it?” went on Scofield to Mrs.
Frothingham.</p>
<p>“I most certainly do! How absurd for me
to be over here, and how more than absurd for
me to deny it if I were!”</p>
<p>This seemed sensible. Why should she deny
it? And mightn’t the butler be mistaken? Or
deliberately falsifying?</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_124">[124]</div>
<p>If there were collusion or criminal assistance
by any of the servants, surely the word of all of
them must be mistrusted unless proven.</p>
<p>And, too, what could have brought Mrs.
Frothingham to the verandah of a home where
she was not an accepted guest? Or, could she
have been spying on the Count?</p>
<p>For it had slowly entered the Coroner’s not
very alert mind that perhaps the volatile widow
had her own plans for the Count’s future, and
Miss Carrington did not figure in them. The
manner of the witness bore out this theory. She
was self-conscious and at times confused. She
frequently looked at the Count and then quickly
averted her gaze. She blushed and stammered
when speaking his name or referring to him. In
a word, she acted as a woman might act in regard
to a man of whom she was jealous. And the situation
bore it out. If Mrs. Frothingham had
matrimonial designs on her distinguished guest,
would she not naturally resent his visits to a
rich neighbor? Mrs. Frothingham was not rich,
and she may well have been afraid of Miss Carrington’s
charm of gold, which could cause many
a man to overlook anything else that might be
lacking.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_125">[125]</div>
<p>Coroner Scofield was getting more and more
tangled in the mazes of this extraordinary case.
He was practically at his wits’ end. At last he
blurted out: “It is impossible, it seems, to get a
coherent, or even plausible story from a woman!
Is there any man present, who knows any of the
details of the happenings of Tuesday evening
and night?”</p>
<p>There was a moment’s silence at this rather
petulant speech, and then Stephen Illsley rose,
and speaking very gravely, said:</p>
<p>“It seems to be my unpleasant duty to tell
what little I know of these matters.”</p>
<p>The relieved Coroner heard this with satisfaction.
Accepting his good fortune, he prepared
to listen to Illsley’s testimony.</p>
<p>“I was spending the evening here,” the witness
began, “and during my visit I was in the
various rooms. At a late hour, perhaps something
after eleven,—I was crossing the hall, and
I saw Mrs. Frothingham on the stairway.”</p>
<p>“On the stairway!” exclaimed the Coroner,
in amazement.</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned Illsley, his grave eyes resting
on the face of the widow, who stared at him
as if stricken dumb. “Yes, I saw her distinctly.
She was evidently coming downstairs, one hand
rested on the banister, and she was looking upward
at the ceiling.”</p>
<p>“Did she see you?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_126">[126]</div>
<p>“I think not. If so, she made no sign. But
she was not looking my way, and I went on into
the reception room, where I was going in search
of a scarf Miss Stuart had left there. When I
recrossed the hall, the lady had disappeared.”</p>
<p>“Did not this seem to you a strange circumstance?”</p>
<p>“I had no right to any opinion on the subject.
It was not my affair what guests were at the house
I was visiting, or what they might be doing.”</p>
<p>“But Mrs. Frothingham asserts she was not
an acquaintance of Miss Carrington.”</p>
<p>“I did not know that, then; and even so, it
gave me no right to speculate concerning the
lady’s presence there. Nor should I refer to it
now, except that in view of the subsequent
tragedy it is due to every principle of right and
justice that all truths be known as to that evening.
Mrs. Frothingham will, of course, recall
the episode and can doubtless explain it.”</p>
<p>“I should like to hear the explanation!” said
Pauline, with flashing eyes. “As mistress here
now, I am interested to know why a stranger
should wander about this house at will.”</p>
<p>Mrs. Frothingham sat silent. Her face
showed not so much consternation or dismay as
a cold, calculating expression, as if debating just
what explanation she should offer.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_127">[127]</div>
<p>At last she spoke. “I may as well own up,”
she said, and laughed nervously. “I <i>was</i> on the
verandah, as the vigilant butler noticed. I did
step inside the hall, as I had so often heard of the
rare tapestries and paintings, and, in my <i>ennui</i>,
I thought it no harm to take a peep. The great
door was ajar, and I was a little chilled by my
walk across the lawns. I said to myself, if I meet
any one I will merely beg a few moments’
grace and then run away. Yes, I did take a step
or two up the stair, to look at a picture on the
landing. It was all innocent enough, perhaps
not in the best of taste, but I was lonely, and the
light and warmth lured me. In a moment I had
slipped out and run away home, laughing over
my escapade like a foolish child.”</p>
<p>Her light laugh rippled out as she concluded
her story. She looked ingenuous and truthful,
but the Coroner distrusted feminine fairy-tales,
and this was a little too fanciful to be true.</p>
<p>Moreover, Mrs. Frothingham was looking at
him sharply from the corner of her eye. Clearly,
she was watching him to see how he took it.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_128">[128]</div>
<p>He didn’t take it very well. The acknowledged
presence of an outsider in the house, for a
not very plausible reason, was illuminating in
his estimation. She had been on the stairway.
Had she been to Miss Carrington’s room? True,
she said she went only to the landing,—but
pshaw, women had no regard for the truth! Had
she and Count Charlier planned between them to—bah,
<i>why</i> did this woman want to kill her
neighbor? Even if she were jealous of the
Count’s attention, would she go so far as crime?
No, of course not! He must question her further.
And yet, what good would that do, if she
would not tell the truth?</p>
<p>Well, she was in the house at half-past eleven,
that much was certain, for Stephen Illsley’s
story and her own and also the butler’s testimony
all coincided as to that.</p>
<p>And then, Detective Hardy, who had just returned
from a short errand, made a startling
statement. He declared that the glove which
had been found clasped tightly in the dead fingers
of the late Miss Carrington did belong to
Count Henri Charlier.</p>
<p>Mr. Hardy had been searching the Count’s
wardrobe, and though he did not find the mate to
that particular glove, he found many others,
some worn and some entirely unused, but all of
the same size and made by the same firm as the
one now in the Coroner’s possession!</p>
<p>Thus cornered Count Charlier reluctantly
admitted that it was his glove.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_129">[129]</div>
<p>“I denied it,” he thus excused himself, “because
I have no idea how it came into Miss Carrington’s
possession, and I did not wish to implicate
her in an affair with my unworthy self.”</p>
<p>“H’m,” thought Gray Haviland, fixing his
attention on the Count and on the flustered Mrs.
Frothingham; “a precious pair of adventurers!
I expect Scofield is right, we won’t need an expert
detective.”</p>
<p>There was more of the inquest. But its continuance
brought out no developments not already
here transcribed. There was much cross-questioning
and probing; there was much rather
futile effort to make all the strange details fit any
one theory; there was variance of opinion; and
there was more or less dissension.</p>
<p>But as a final result, the Coroner’s jury
brought in a verdict that Miss Lucy Carrington
met her death by poison administered by a person
or persons unknown, who thereafter, probably
for the purpose of diverting attention from
the poison, struck her a blow on the head. The
jury in their deliberation felt that Count Henri
Charlier was implicated. But not having sufficient
evidence to make a charge, suggested to the
detective force that he be kept under surveillance.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_130">[130]</div>
<h2 id="c10"><span class="small">X</span> <br/>BIZARRE CLUES</h2>
<p>It was Saturday. The funeral of Miss Carrington
had been held the day before and the imposing
obsequies had been entirely in keeping
with her love of elaborate display in life. The
casket was of the richest, the flowers piled mountain
high, the music, the most expensive available;
for the young people in charge had felt it
incumbent on them to arrange everything as
Miss Lucy would have desired it.</p>
<p>It was a pathetic commentary on the character
of the dead woman that while all who
mourned her felt the shock and horror of her
death, they were not deeply bowed with sorrow.
Pauline, as nearest relative, would naturally
grieve most, but for the moment her affections
were lost sight of in the paralyzing effects of the
sudden tragedy.</p>
<p>Anita Frayne had practically “gone to
pieces.” She was nervous, and jumped twitchingly
if any one spoke to her.</p>
<p>Gray Haviland was reticent, an unusual thing
for him, and devoted most of his time to matters
of business connected with the estate.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_131">[131]</div>
<p>Estelle, the maid, had succumbed to a nervous
break-down, and had been taken to a nearby
sanatorium, where she indulged in frequent and
violent hysterics.</p>
<p>The household was in a continual excitement.
Lawyers and detectives were coming and going,
neighbors were calling, and reporters simply infested
the place.</p>
<p>Pauline and Anita, though outwardly polite,
were not on good terms, and rarely talked together.</p>
<p>But this morning the two girls and Haviland
were called to a confab by Hardy, the detective.</p>
<p>“They’ve arrested the Count,” Hardy began,
and Anita screamed an interruption:</p>
<p>“Arrested Count Charlier! Put him in
jail?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned the detective. “I found
the other one of that pair of gloves, the mate to
the one in the lady’s hands,—where, do you suppose?”</p>
<p>“Where?”</p>
<p>“Rolled up in a pair of socks, in the Count’s
chiffonnier drawer; of course, to hide it, as it is
not at all easy to destroy a thing like that while
visiting.”</p>
<p>“I know it,” said Pauline, earnestly; “it is
hard. I’ve often noticed that, when I’ve wanted
to burn a letter or anything. You can’t do it, unknown
to the servants or somebody.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_132">[132]</div>
<p>“Rubbish!” said Anita, “It would have been
easy for the Count to dispose of a glove if he had
wanted to. But he didn’t. He never committed
that crime! If a glove was found, as you say,
somebody else put it there to incriminate an innocent
man. It’s too absurd to fasten the thing
on Count Charlier! Do you suppose he went to
the boudoir and gave Miss Carrington poison,
and then shook hands good-evening, and left his
glove in her grasp? Nonsense! The glove in
her dead hand was put there by the criminal to
implicate the Count, and the glove in the
rolled-up socks for the same purpose and by the
same person!”</p>
<p>“By Jove, Miss Frayne! You may be
right!” cried Hardy. “Somehow I can’t see the
Count’s hand in this thing, and yet——”</p>
<p>“And yet, he did it!” put in Haviland.
“Have they really jailed him? I’m glad.”</p>
<p>“I’m sorry,” said Pauline, and her face was
white; “Did he—did he—c-confess?” The
girl’s voice trembled, and she could scarcely
pronounce the words.</p>
<p>“Not he,” said Hardy; “he seemed dazed,
and declared his innocence,—but he was not convincing.
He takes it very hard and talks wildly
and at random. But you know what Frenchmen
are; liable to go off their heads at any time.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_133">[133]</div>
<p>“But look at it,” reasoned Anita; “<i>why</i>
would the Count kill Miss Carrington? Why, he
thought of marrying her.”</p>
<p>“Not much he didn’t!” and Hardy smiled a
little. “I size it up this way. Matters had gone
so far that he had to propose to the lady
or clear out. He didn’t want to clear out
for then she would take back the little matter
of ten thousand dollars already marked for him
in her will. Moreover, he couldn’t realize that
tidy little sum, which he very much wants, so
long as she lived. To be sure, he would have had
far more, had he married her, but that was not in
‘his nibs’’ plans. So he resorted to desperate
measures. He’s a thorough villain, that man!
Outwardly, most correct and honorable, but
really, an adventurer, as is also his friend, the
dashing young widow.”</p>
<p>“Mr. Hardy,” and Pauline spoke calmly,
now, “do you <i>know</i> these things to be true of
Count Charlier, or are you assuming them?”</p>
<p>“Well, Miss Stuart, I know human nature
pretty well, especially male human nature, and if
I’m mistaken in this chap, I’ll be surprised. But
also, I’ve set afoot an investigation, and we’ll
soon learn his record, antecedents and all that.
At present, no one knows much about him; and
what Mrs. Frothingham knows she won’t tell.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_134">[134]</div>
<p>“It was very strange for Aunt Lucy to give
him that money——” began Pauline musingly.</p>
<p>“Not at all,” broke in Gray, “I know all
about that. Miss Carrington had a certain
bunch of bonds that amounted to just fifty thousand
dollars. In one of her sudden bursts of
generosity, and she often had such, she decided
to give those bonds to five people. I mean, to
devise them in her will, not to give them now.
Well, four were Miss Stuart and Carr Loria,
Miss Frayne and myself. And then, she hesitated
for some time, but finally announced that
the fifth portion should be named for the Count.
I was there when the lawyer fixed it up, and Miss
Carrington turned to me and said, laughingly,
‘I may change that before it comes due!’ Oh, she
was always messing with her will. I’m glad
there’s a tidy bit in it for me, as it is. Her
demise <i>might</i> have taken place when I was for
the moment cut out.”</p>
<p>“Was there ever such a time?” asked Hardy.</p>
<p>“There sure was! Only last month, she got
firing mad with me, and crossed me off without
a shilling. Then she got over her mad and
restored me to favor.”</p>
<p>“You and Miss Frayne have other bequests
than those particular bonds you mentioned?”
asked the detective.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_135">[135]</div>
<p>“Yes, we have each ten thou’ beside, which
was all right of the old lady, eh, Anita?”</p>
<p>“None too much, considering what I have
stood from her capricious temper and eccentric
ways,” returned the girl.</p>
<p>“Your own temper is none too even,” said
Pauline, quietly; “I’d rather you wouldn’t speak
ill of my aunt, if you please.”</p>
<p>What might have been a passage at arms was
averted by the appearance of a footman with a
cablegram.</p>
<p>“It’s from Carr!” exclaimed Pauline, as she
tore it open, and read:</p>
<blockquote>
<p>Awful news just received. Shall I come home or will you
come here? Let Haviland attend all business. Love and
sympathy.</p>
<p><span class="jr"><span class="sc">Carrington Loria.</span></span></p>
</blockquote>
<p>“He’s in Cairo,” commented Haviland, looking
at the paper; “that’s lucky. If he had been
off up the Nile on one of his excavating tours,
we mightn’t have had communication for weeks.
Well, he practically retains me as business
manager, at least for the present. And Lord
knows there’s a lot to be done!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_136">[136]</div>
<p>“I don’t understand, Gray, why you look
upon Carr as more in authority than I am,” said
Pauline, almost petulantly; “I am an equal heir,
and, too, I am here, and Carr is the other side
of the world.”</p>
<p>“That’s so, Polly. I don’t know why, myself.
I suppose because he is the man of the family.”</p>
<p>“That doesn’t make any difference. I think
from now on, Gray, it will be proper for you to
consider me the head of the house as far as business
matters are concerned. You can pay Carr
his half of the residuary in whatever form he
wants it. I shall keep the place, at least for the
present.”</p>
<p>“Won’t Mr. Loria come back to America?”
asked Hardy.</p>
<p>“I scarcely think so,” replied Pauline.
“There’s really no use of his doing so, unless he
chooses. And I’m pretty sure he won’t choose,
as he’s so wrapped up in his work over there,
that he’d hate to leave unless necessary.”</p>
<p>“But won’t he feel a necessity to help investigate
the murder?” urged Hardy.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_137">[137]</div>
<p>“I don’t know,” and Pauline looked thoughtful.
“You see what he says; when he asks if
he shall come home, he means do I want him to.
If I don’t request it, I’m fairly sure he won’t
come. Of course, when he learns all the details,
he will be as anxious as we that the murderer
should be found. But if I know Carr, he will far
rather pay for the most expensive detective
service than come over himself. And, too, what
could he do, more than we can? We shall, of
course, use every effort and every means to solve
the mysteries of the case, and he could advise us
no better than the lawyers already in our
counsel.”</p>
<p>“That’s all true,” said Haviland; “and I
think Loria means that when he puts me in
charge of it all. But after a week or so we’ll get
a letter from him, and he’ll tell us what he
intends to do.”</p>
<p>“I shall cable him,” said Pauline, thoughtfully,
“not to come over unless he wants to.
Then he can do as he likes. But he needn’t come
for my benefit. The property must be divided
and all that, but we can settle any uncertainties
by mail or cable. And, I think I shall go on the
trip as we had planned it.”</p>
<p>“You do!” said Gray, in amazement. “Go
to Egypt?”</p>
<p>“Yes, I don’t see why not. I’d like the trip,
and it would take my mind off these horrors.
Our passage is booked for a February sailing.
If necessary I will postpone it a few weeks, but
I see no reason why I shouldn’t go. Do you?”</p>
<p>“No,” said Haviland, slowly.</p>
<p>Hardy seemed about to speak and then
thought better of it, and said nothing.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_138">[138]</div>
<p>“Of course I shall not go,” began Anita, and
Pauline interrupted her with:</p>
<p>“You go! I should say not! Why should
you?”</p>
<p>“Why shouldn’t I, if I choose?” returned
Anita, and her pink cheeks burned rosy. “I am
my own mistress, I have my own money. I am
as free to go as you are.”</p>
<p>“Of course you are,” said Pauline, coldly.
“Only please advise me on what steamer you are
sailing.”</p>
<p>“That you may take another,” and Anita
laughed shortly. “But I may prefer to go on
the one you do. Aren’t you rather suddenly
anxious to leave this country?”</p>
<p>Pauline faced her. “Anita Frayne,” she
said, “if you suspect me of crime, I would rather
you said so definitely, than to fling out these
continual innuendoes. Do you?”</p>
<p>“I couldn’t say that Pauline. But there are,—there
certainly are some things to be explained
regarding your interview with your
aunt on Tuesday night. You know, I heard you
in her room.”</p>
<p>“Your speech, Anita, is that of a guilty conscience.
As you well know, I saw you come from
her room at the hour you accuse me of being
there.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_139">[139]</div>
<p>“Let up, girls,” said Haviland; “you only
make trouble by that sort of talk.”</p>
<p>“But when an innocent man is arrested,
Pauline ought to tell what she knows!”</p>
<p>“I have told, and it seems to implicate you!”</p>
<p>The impending scene was averted by Haviland,
who insisted on knowing what word should
be sent to Loria.</p>
<p>“May as well get it off,” he said; “it takes
long enough to get word back and forth to him,
anyway. What shall I say for you, Polly?”</p>
<p>“Tell him to come over or not, just as he
prefers, but that I shall be quite content if he
does not care to come; and that I shall go to
Egypt as soon as I can arrange to do so. Put it
into shape yourself,—you know more about
cabling than I do.”</p>
<p>Haviland went away to the library, and
Hardy followed.</p>
<p>“Look here, Mr. Haviland,” said the latter,
“what do these ladies mean by accusing each
other of all sorts of things? Did either of them
have any hand in this murder?”</p>
<p>“Not in a thousand years!” declared Gray,
emphatically. “The girls never loved each
other, but lately, even before the death of Miss
Lucy, they have been at daggers drawn. I don’t
know why, I’m sure!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_140">[140]</div>
<p>“But what do you make of this story of Miss
Frayne’s about hearing Miss Stuart in her
aunt’s room?”</p>
<p>“She didn’t hear her. I mean she didn’t hear
Miss Stuart; what she heard was Miss Carrington
talking to herself. The old lady was erratic
in lots of ways.”</p>
<p>“Why do you all say the old lady? She
wasn’t really old.”</p>
<p>“About fifty. But she tried so hard to appear
young, that it made her seem older.”</p>
<p>“She was in love with the Count, of course?”</p>
<p>“Yes; as she was in love with any man she
could attach. No, that’s not quite true. Miss
Lucy cared only for interesting men, but if she
could corral one of those, she used every effort to
snare him.”</p>
<p>“Is the illustrious Count interesting?”</p>
<p>“She found him so. And, yes, he always entertained
us. She made that bequest to attract his
attention and lure him on. And then——”</p>
<p>“Well, and then?”</p>
<p>“Oh, then he couldn’t withstand the temptation
and he shuffled her off, to make sure of the
money now.”</p>
<p>“You think he killed her, then?”</p>
<p>“Who else? Those girls never used a black-jack——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_141">[141]</div>
<p>“But the poison?”</p>
<p>“Had it been poison alone, there might be a
question. But that stunning blow has to be remembered.
And neither Miss Stuart nor Miss
Frayne can be thought of for a moment in connection
with that piece of brutality.”</p>
<p>“But the snake? The queer costume?”</p>
<p>“The costume wasn’t so queer—for a boudoir
garb. The snake <i>is</i> inexplicable,—unless
the man has a disordered mind, and used insane
methods to cover his tracks. Then there’s the
glove, you can’t get around that!”</p>
<p>“That glove might have been put in her hand
by anybody.”</p>
<p>“That’s so! By a professional burglar, say!
I really believe——”</p>
<p>“Oh, let up on that professional burglar business!
No burglar is going off without his loot,
when he has uninterrupted time enough to kill a
person twice, with poison and then, to hide that,
with a fractured skull! How do you explain,
even in theory, those two murderous attacks?”</p>
<p>“Good Lord, man, <i>I</i> don’t know! It’s all the
most inexplicable muddle. I don’t see how any
of the things could happen, but they <i>did</i> happen!
You’re the detective, not I! Aren’t you ever
going to discover anything?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_142">[142]</div>
<p>“I may as well own up, Mr. Haviland, I am
beyond my depth. There is a belief among detectives
that the more bizarre and amazing the
clues are, the easier the deduction therefrom.
But I don’t believe that. This case is bizarre
enough, in all conscience, yet what can one deduce
from that paper snake and that squeezed-up
glove? It was all up in a little wad, you know,
not at all as if it were carelessly drawn from a
man’s hand, or pulled off in a struggle.”</p>
<p>“There was no struggle. The features were
composed, even almost smiling.”</p>
<p>“I know it. That proves it was no burglar.
Well, I’m up a tree. I wish you felt inclined to
call in Fleming Stone. He’s the only man on this
continent who could unravel it all.”</p>
<p>“I want to get him, but Miss Stuart won’t
hear of it. I’d have to have either her authority
or Loria’s.”</p>
<p>“But Mr. Loria gave you full swing, in that
cable.”</p>
<p>“Yes, for ordinary business matters. But
this is different. I’d have to have assurance that
he’d pay the bills before I engaged Stone. I’ve
heard he’s some expensive.”</p>
<p>“I’ve heard that, too. But, by Jove, I’d like
to work with him! Or under him. I say, I wish
you could bring it about.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_143">[143]</div>
<p>“I might cable Loria on my own, and not
mention it to Miss Stuart until I get the permission.”</p>
<p>“Do. For as you say, the two ladies cannot
possibly be involved, and I, for one, don’t believe
that nincompoop Count ever pulled off such a
complicated affair all by himself.”</p>
<p>“What about the widow he’s visiting?”</p>
<p>“Ah, there you have it! Those two are in it,
but there’s more mystery yet.”</p>
<p>“I’d like to have it straightened out,” said
Haviland, thoughtfully. “In a way, I feel responsible
to Loria, since he has put me in charge.
And if he wants me to get Stone, I’ll be glad to do
so. As you say, it can’t affect the girls,—that
stuff Anita made up was only to bother Pauline.
You see, Pauline came back at her with a counter
accusation. They’re both unstrung and upset,
and they scarcely know what they’re saying.”</p>
<p>“Then there’s that French maid.”</p>
<p>“Oh, Estelle. She’s a negligible quantity.
She’s hysterical from sheer nervousness, and she
lies so fast she can hardly keep up with herself.”</p>
<p>“Well, think it over, and if you see your way
clear to call in Stone, I’ll be mighty glad. If the
Frenchman <i>is</i> the guilty party, Stone will nail
him and prove it beyond all doubt. And if not, we
surely don’t want an innocent man to swing.”</p>
<p>“That we don’t,” agreed Haviland.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_144">[144]</div>
<h2 id="c11"><span class="small">XI</span> <br/>FLEMING STONE</h2>
<p>“Yes, I have often heard the idea expressed
that the more bizarre the clues appear, the easier
the solution of the mystery. And this is frequently
true.”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone looked from one to another of
the interested group of listeners. They sat in
the library,—Pauline, Anita, Gray Haviland
and the young detective, Hardy.</p>
<p>Haviland had carried out his plan of cabling
Carrington Loria for authority to employ Mr.
Stone, and had received a reply to use his own
judgment in all such matters and charge the expense
to Loria’s account.</p>
<p>Pauline had been opposed to the idea of calling
Fleming Stone to the case, but as she seemed
unable to put forth any valid objections, Haviland
had insisted until she gave her consent. So
arrangements had been quickly made, and the
great Detective had reached Garden Steps on
Wednesday afternoon, just a week after the discovery
of the murder.</p>
<p>Previously unacquainted with Stone, the
whole household was interested in his personality,
and this preliminary conversation was by
way of introduction.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_145">[145]</div>
<p>A man of nearly fifty, Fleming Stone was tall
and well proportioned, with a carriage and bearing
that gave an impression of strength. His
clear-cut face and firm jaw gave the same character
indications as are seen in portraits of
Lincoln, but his features were far more harmonious
than those of our rugged-faced president.</p>
<p>Stone’s hair, thick and dark, was slightly
grayed at the temples, and his deep-set eyes were
now lustrous, and again, shadowed, like the
water of a dark pool. His lean jaw and forceful
mouth made his face in repose somewhat stern,
but this effect was often banished by his delightful
smile, which softened his whole countenance
and gave him a distinct air of friendliness.</p>
<p>His manner was full of charm, and even
Pauline became fascinated as she watched him
and listened to his talk.</p>
<p>Fully at ease and skilfully directing the conversation,
while he seemed merely sharing it,
Stone was studying and classifying the new elements
with which he had to deal. Not yet had he
inquired as to the details of the case in hand, he
was discussing detective work in general, much
to the gratification of Tom Hardy, who listened
as a pupil at the feet of Gamaliel.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_146">[146]</div>
<p>“Yes,” went on Stone, settling back sociably
in his easy chair, while the others unconsciously
fell into more informal postures, “Yes, bizarre
effects do often point the way to a successful
quest. Why, once, a man was found dead, with
his feet in a tub of cold water. It was discovered
that his feet had been immersed after death had
taken place. Obviously the tub of water had
been used as a blind, to fog up the case. But the
very character of the clue led at once to a man
who was known as a ‘cold water fiend,’ and a
fiend indeed he was. He was the murderer. You
see, he was clever, but not clever enough. He
had wit enough to think of the queer circumstance
of the tub of water, but not enough to
realize that the clue would lead directly to his
own undoing.”</p>
<p>Everybody looked thoughtful, but it was
Hardy who spoke; “Yes, Mr. Stone,” he said,
“but that clue was put there on purpose. Do you
think these strange effects connected with Miss
Carrington’s murder were deliberately arranged?”</p>
<p>“That I can’t tell now, Mr. Hardy. In fact, I
have not heard a connected and circumstantial
account of the discoveries, as yet. Suppose we go
over the case, leisurely, and let me get a complete
account by means of a general conversation.
I will ask questions, or you may volunteer
information, as seems most enlightening. Tell
me first of the character and characteristics of
Miss Carrington. Was she timid, or fearful of
burglars?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_147">[147]</div>
<p>“Not at all,” said Haviland. “She was careful
to have the house locked up at night by the
servants, but she had no burglar alarms or anything
of that sort.”</p>
<p>“If a marauder had appeared, would she have
been likely to scream out in affright?”</p>
<p>“No, I don’t think so,” volunteered Anita.
“She would more likely demand to know what he
wanted and order him out.”</p>
<p>“Yet the black-jack clearly indicates a burglar,”
went on Stone; “I can’t imagine an ordinary
citizen, of any calling, owning or using
such a weapon.”</p>
<p>“Have you examined the thing?” asked
Haviland.</p>
<p>“No; I should like to see it.”</p>
<p>Tom Hardy at once produced it, having
brought it with him from Police Headquarters
for the purpose.</p>
<p>“H’m,” said Fleming Stone, as he fingered
the not very alarming-looking affair. In fact, it
was merely a long, narrow bag, made of dark
cloth and filled with shot. The bag was tied
tightly at one end with a bit of twine to prevent
the escape of the contents.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_148">[148]</div>
<p>“Home-made affair,” Stone went on. “Made
probably by a professional burglar, but an amateur
murderer. See, it is merely a bit of heavy
cloth, out from an old coat sleeve or trouser leg,
sewed up in a bungling manner to make a bag.
It is stitched with coarse black thread and the
stitches are drawn hard and firm, evidently
pulled through by a strong hand. Then, filled
with shot, it is tied with a bit of old fish-line,
which also is pulled and knotted by muscular
fingers. And——” Stone paused abruptly.</p>
<p>“And—” prompted Anita, breathlessly, her
eyes fixed on the speaker.</p>
<p>“Nothing much,” and Stone smiled; “only
I should say the burglar lived in a house recently
remodeled.”</p>
<p>Hardy nodded in satisfaction. This was the
sort of deduction he was looking for. Next he
hoped for the color of the man’s hair, and the
sort of cigar he smoked. But he was doomed to
disappointment.</p>
<p>“We seem to have drifted from the subject of
Miss Carrington,” Stone said. “The evening
before her death was she in her usual spirits?
Evidently no premonition of her fate?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_149">[149]</div>
<p>“On the contrary,” said Gray, “she remarked
during the evening that something would
happen to her that night which would surprise
and astound us all. She said distinctly that ‘to-morrow
everything would be different.’”</p>
<p>“What did you understand her to mean by
that?”</p>
<p>“We couldn’t understand it at all. It was
most mysterious. Nor do we yet know what she
meant. For surely she had no thought of dying.
She spent the evening playing cards and listening
to music, and conversation with the family
and guests, quite as usual.”</p>
<p>“In amiable mood?” asked Stone.</p>
<p>“No,” replied Pauline, taking up the talk;
“on the contrary she was exceedingly irritable
and ill-tempered.”</p>
<p>“You saw her after she went to her room for
the night?” and Stone turned his whole attention
to Pauline.</p>
<p>“Yes; Miss Frayne and I always went to her
room with her, to say good-night and to receive
possible orders or suggestions for the next day’s
occupations.”</p>
<p>“And you say she was unamiable?”</p>
<p>“That is a mild word,” and Pauline smiled a
little. “She was in a high temper, and she told
us both that we were to leave this house the
next day.”</p>
<p>“You both left her in that mood?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_150">[150]</div>
<p>“Yes, we were obliged to do so. She dismissed
us peremptorily and ordered us from the
room.”</p>
<p>“And you saw her next, Miss Stuart, when?”
asked Fleming Stone gently.</p>
<p>Pauline hesitated for a perceptible instant,
then she said, with a slight air of bravado,
“next morning.”</p>
<p>“I have been told the main facts,” went on
Stone, “but I want to learn certain details.
Please tell me, Miss Stuart, exactly how she then
appeared.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I can’t!” and Pauline flung her face into
her hands with a short, sharp cry.</p>
<p>“I should think you <i>couldn’t</i>!” exclaimed
Anita, and her voice was distinctly accusing.</p>
<p>This seemed to rouse Pauline, and she looked
up haughtily at the speaker. “I don’t wonder
<i>you</i> think so!” she cried. “But since you ask,
Mr. Stone, I will do the best I can. My aunt was
seated at her dressing-table, but not in her usual
chair,—or indeed, as if she were in any way attending
to her toilette,—but in an easy chair,
more as if she were sitting there in contemplation.”</p>
<p>“Was she given to such indications of vanity?”
asked Stone, in a gentle way.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_151">[151]</div>
<p>“Not at all. My aunt was not a beautiful
woman, and she had no illusions about her personal
appearance. I have never known her to
look at herself in a mirror more than was necessary
for her dressing. Her maid will tell you
this.”</p>
<p>“Go on, please, Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>“When I saw my aunt, she was sitting
placidly, even smilingly,—and I did not, for a
moment, imagine she was not alive. Then I noticed
her large tortoise-shell comb was broken to
bits, and I noticed, too, her rigid, staring face.
The next few moments are a confused memory
to me, but I know I touched her hand and felt it
cold, then I called to Mr. Haviland and he came.”</p>
<p>“Tell me of your aunt’s garb. I understand
it was most unusual.”</p>
<p>“Only in the accessories. The gown she had
on was a negligée of Oriental make and fabric,
elaborate, but one of which she was fond and
which she had worn several times. Round her
shoulders was a scarf, one of those heavy Syrian
ones, of net patterned with silver. Then, she
had on quantities of jewelry. Not only her
pearls, and a few pins, which she had worn
during the evening, but she had added many
brooches and bracelets and rings of great
value.”</p>
<p>“She was wearing, let us say, a hundred
thousand dollars’ worth of jewelry?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_152">[152]</div>
<p>“Far more than that. Her pearls alone are
worth that amount. Her diamond sunburst is
valued at fifty thousand dollars and her emerald
brooch is equally valuable. My aunt believed in
gems as an investment, and though she usually
kept them in a safe deposit vault, she had recently
taken them from there, and had them all
in the house.”</p>
<p>“A strange proceeding?”</p>
<p>“Very. I have never known such a thing
to occur before unless for some especial social
occasion.”</p>
<p>“And the paper snake, of which I have been
told——”</p>
<p>“That is the strangest part of all! My aunt
was not only afraid of live snakes, but she had
also a perfect horror of any picture or artificial
representation of them. She could never, in her
right mind, have placed that paper snake about
her own neck, nor would she have allowed any
one else to do it, without screaming out in horror.
Yet, the doctors declare it must have been placed
round her neck before death. Therefore, it is
to me entirely unexplainable.”</p>
<p>“Is not that a bizarre clue that should make
the case an easy one?” asked Anita, with an inquiring
glance at Stone.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_153">[153]</div>
<p>“It may be so,” he replied, with a thoughtful
look at her. “Where could such a snake have
come from?”</p>
<p>“It was brought by the burglar, of course,”
said Pauline, quickly.</p>
<p>“I don’t mean that; but where could it be
bought?”</p>
<p>“Oh, at Vantine’s or any Japanese shop,”
said Pauline, “or at some of the department
stores.”</p>
<p>“Could you, by inquiry, find out if Miss Carrington
purchased it herself at any of those
places?”</p>
<p>“I could inquire; but I am sure, Mr. Stone,
that Aunt Lucy never bought such a thing.”</p>
<p>“It would simplify matters somewhat if you
would kindly find out,” and Stone nodded at her,
as if to stamp this suggestion a definite request.</p>
<p>The conversation went on, and no one noticed
that so deftly did Fleming Stone guide it
that only facts were brought out. No sooner did
any one begin to formulate an opinion or theory
than he skilfully turned the subject or changed
the drift of the discussion.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_154">[154]</div>
<p>He gathered from facial expressions and
manners much that he wanted to know, he learned
the attitudes of the various members of the household
toward each other, and he came to the conclusion
that as Gray Haviland had engaged him,
and as he stood as business head of the estate
by authority of Carrington Loria, to Haviland
should his reports be made.</p>
<p>“Tell me more of Mr. Loria,” Stone said, at
last, after many matters had been discussed.</p>
<p>“He and I are children of Miss Carrington’s
two sisters,” said Pauline. “Our parents all
died when we were young children and Aunt
Lucy brought us both up. Carr, as we call him,
lived with us, except for his college terms, until
four years ago. Then he had an opportunity to
go to Egypt and engage in excavation and ancient
research work. He is absorbed in it, and
has been home only twice in the four years. It
was planned that my aunt and I should go to
Egypt next month on a pleasure trip, and both he
and we looked forward eagerly to it. Miss
Frayne was to accompany us, and Mr. Haviland
also.”</p>
<p>“Is it your intention to abandon the trip?”</p>
<p>“Speaking for myself, Mr. Stone, no,” and
Pauline looked determined. “I cannot answer
for the others, but it seems to me that such a
visit to my cousin would be not only right and
proper for me, but the only way for me to find
relief and distraction from these dreadful
scenes.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_155">[155]</div>
<p>“You won’t go, I assume,” said Stone,
gently, “until the murderer of your aunt is apprehended
with certainty?”</p>
<p>“I cannot say,” and suddenly Pauline flushed
rosily and looked distinctly embarrassed.</p>
<p>“Rather not!” declared Anita, with an unpleasant
glance, and Fleming Stone made haste
to introduce a new phase of the subject.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_156">[156]</div>
<h2 id="c12"><span class="small">XII</span> <br/>ESTELLE’S STORY</h2>
<p>At the invitation of Haviland, Fleming Stone
was a house guest at Garden Steps. Pauline had
raised objections to this, but with Carr Loria’s
authority back of him, Gray had insisted, and
Pauline unwillingly consented.</p>
<p>Stone himself recognized the fact that Pauline
disliked him, or at any rate disliked having
him on the case, but he ignored it and showed
to her the same gracious manner and pleasant
attitude that he showed to all. Anita, on the
other hand, seemed charmed with Stone. She
lost no opportunity to talk with him, and she
used every endeavor to attract his attention to
herself. In fact, she tried to flirt with him, and
much to the surprise of the others, Stone seemed
ready to meet her advances and respond to them.</p>
<p>The morning after his arrival, breakfast
over, Stone announced his intention of making a
thorough examination of Miss Carrington’s
rooms, and asked that he be permitted to go
alone for the purpose.</p>
<p>“If Mr. Hardy comes, send him up,” he
ordered, as Haviland unlocked the door to give
him admittance.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_157">[157]</div>
<p>Stone passed through the boudoir to the
bedroom and from that to the elaborate dressing-room
and bath. Quickly he noted the
obvious details. Everything had been left practically
untouched, and his rapid, trained gaze
took in the bed, turned down but not slept in;
the toilet accessories laid ready in the bathroom;
and the fresh, unused towels, that proved
the unfortunate victim had not prepared to
retire, but had, for some reason, donned her
jewels at that unusual hour.</p>
<p>Back to the boudoir Stone went and made
there more careful scrutiny. Carefully he examined
the white dust of powder on the floor.
At Hardy’s orders, this had not been swept
away, and Stone stood, with folded arms, looking
at it. He saw the place where the powder
had been smeared about,—he had been told of
this,—but he saw other places where faint footprints
were to his keen eye discernible. Not
sufficiently clear to judge much of their characteristics,
but enough to show that a stockinged
foot had imprinted them.</p>
<p>“Well, what do you make of the tracks?”
asked Hardy, coming in upon his meditations.</p>
<p>“Their tale is a short one but clear,” returned
Stone, smiling a greeting to the younger
detective. “As you see, they go out of the
room only, they don’t come in.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_158">[158]</div>
<p>“Proving?”</p>
<p>“That the intruder came in at the door, accomplished
his dreadful purpose, and then,
stepped around here in front of his victim,—here
where the powder is spilt, and then went
straight out of the room. Why did he do this?”</p>
<p>“He heard something to frighten him off?”</p>
<p>“He saw something that frightened him. I
doubt if he heard anything. But he dropped his
black-jack and fled. Did you bring the photographs
of the scene?”</p>
<p>“Yes, here they are.” Hardy handed over
a sheaf of the gruesome pictures, and Stone
scanned them eagerly. Yet their gruesomeness
lay largely in the idea that the subject of them
was not a living person,—for in appearance
they were by no means unpleasant to look at.
The face of Miss Carrington was serene and
smiling, her wide-open eyes, though staring,
were filled with a life-like wonder, not at all an
expression of fright or terror.</p>
<p>“You see,” volunteered Hardy, “she was
sitting here, admiring herself, and happily
smiling, when the villain sneaked up behind her
and gave her that crack over the head.”</p>
<p>“But she was already dead when she was
hit on the head.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_159">[159]</div>
<p>“So the doctors think, but I believe they’re
mistaken. Why, there’s no theory that would
account for hitting a dead person!”</p>
<p>“And yet, that is what happened. No,
Hardy, the doctors are not mistaken about the
hour of death, and about the poison in her system
and all that. But the most obvious and
most important clue, for the moment, is that
black-jack. Just where was it found?”</p>
<p>“Right here, Mr. Stone, under the edge of
this couch. Hidden on purpose, of course.”</p>
<p>“No, I think not. Dropped by the burglar,
rather, when he was startled by something unexpected.
You see, he doubtless stood here,
where the powder is dusted about, and to drop
the thing quickly, it would fall or be flung just
there where it was found.”</p>
<p>“Yes, but what scared him, if he didn’t hear
anything?”</p>
<p>“Something that frightened him so terribly
that he fled without taking the jewels he had
come for! Something that made him make
quick, straight tracks for the door and downstairs
and out, by the way he had entered.”</p>
<p>“Good lord! Say, Mr. Stone, you think it
was that make-believe Count, don’t you?”</p>
<p>“Why make-believe?”</p>
<p>“Oh, somehow, I feel sure he’s a fake. He’s
not the real thing,—or <i>I’m</i> greatly mistaken!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_160">[160]</div>
<p>“Let me see that glove found in her hand.
Have you it with you?”</p>
<p>Hardy had brought some of the exhibits
held by the police, and, taking the glove from his
bag, he handed it to Fleming Stone.</p>
<p>Stone looked at the glove hastily, but, raising
it to his nose, smelled of it very carefully.</p>
<p>“No,” he said, returning it, “no, the Count
is not the man who wielded the black-jack. I’m
fairly certain of that.”</p>
<p>“Well, I’m blessed if I can see how you know
by smelling! By the way, Mr. Stone, I suppose
you heard all about the conversation that Miss
Frayne related as taking place in this room
after one o’clock that night?”</p>
<p>“Yes, I’ve read the full account of it. What
do you think about it?”</p>
<p>“Oh, I think it was the Count, talking to Miss
Carrington before he killed her. He has a very
low voice, and speaks almost inaudibly always.
Then, you see, he is down in her will for ten
thousand dollars of those bonds, and he’s very
fond of pearls,——”</p>
<p>“What’s that? Who said he was fond of
pearls?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_161">[161]</div>
<p>“Oh, maybe you didn’t hear about that.
Why, Miss Frayne remembered afterward, that
another sentence she heard Miss Carrington
say was, ‘I know how very fond you are of
pearls.’ She forgot that speech in her evidence,
but found it afterward in the written account
she had of what she overheard at the door.
And his Countship is fond of pearls. He talked
a lot about those the lady wore that last evening.
He says himself pearls are a hobby with him.”</p>
<p>“So you really think the Count was in this
room that night?”</p>
<p>“Surely I do. It’s no insult to the lady’s
memory to say so. She had a right to receive
him in her boudoir if she chose to do so. It’s
no secret that she was trying to annex him, and
he was not entirely unwilling. You see,—the
way I dope it out,—she had him up here to show
off her stunning jewels, and so tempt him on to
a declaration that she couldn’t seem to work
him up to otherwise. You know she said, ‘To-morrow
these may all be yours, if you will
only——’ or some words to that effect. What
could all that mean, except as I’ve indicated?
And she said, ‘You are the game I’m after,’—those
weren’t the words, I know, but it meant
that.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_162">[162]</div>
<p>“However, I can’t think the Count struck
that awful blow that fractured her skull. Villain
he may be, even a murderous one, but that
black-jack business, to my mind, points to a
lower type of brain, a more thick-skinned
criminal.”</p>
<p>Stone spoke musingly, looking about the
room as he talked.</p>
<p>“Could it be,” he went on, “that she was
talking to herself? or, say, to a picture,—a photograph
of somebody? I don’t see any photographs
about.”</p>
<p>Both men looked around, but there were no
portraits to be seen.</p>
<p>“Funny,” said Hardy: “most women have
photographs of their family or relatives all over
the place. Not even one of Miss Stuart or of her
nephew, Loria.”</p>
<p>“No, nor any of absent friends or school-mates.”
Stone looked over all the silver paraphernalia
of the dressing-table and other tables
for even a small framed photograph that might
have escaped notice, but found none. On the
walls hung only gilt-framed water colors or
photographs of famous bits of art or architecture
in dark wood frames. Many of these were
of old world masterpieces, Italian cathedrals or
Egyptian temples. Others were a well-known
Madonna, a Venus of Milo, and one at which
Hardy exclaimed, “She’s a sure enough peach!
Who’s she?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_163">[163]</div>
<p>“That’s Cleopatra, starting on her Nile
trip,” said Stone, smiling at Hardy’s evident
admiration.</p>
<p>“’Tis, eh? Then Loria brought it to her.
He’s daffy over anything Egyptian. And he’s
mighty generous. The house is full of the stuff
he brings or sends over; and it’s his money, Mr.
Stone, that pays your damages. Miss Stuart,
now, she’s none too free-handed, they say.”</p>
<p>But Fleming Stone paid little heed to this
gossip. He was studying the photographs of
the dead lady as being of far more interest than
pictures on the boudoir walls.</p>
<p>“Where’s that maid?” he said suddenly;
“the one who brought the breakfast tray——”</p>
<p>“She’s in the sanatorium,” returned
Hardy; “we told you that, Mr. Stone.”</p>
<p>“Yes, yes, I know. But where? Can I see
her? Now, at once!”</p>
<p>“Yes, I suppose so. It’s right near here. A
small private affair, only a few patients. They
needn’t really have sent her, but she carried on
so, Miss Stuart wouldn’t have her about any
longer.”</p>
<p>“Come, let us go there.” As he spoke,
Fleming Stone left the room, and without waiting
for the hurrying Hardy, ran downstairs,
and was in the hall, getting into his great coat
when the other joined him.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_164">[164]</div>
<p>So great was Hardy’s faith in his superior,
and so anxious was he to watch his methods,
that he donned his own overcoat without a
word, and the two set forth.</p>
<p>It was only a short walk, and on the way,
Stone looked about in every direction, asking
innumerable questions about the neighboring
houses and their occupants.</p>
<p>After passing several large and handsome
estates, they came to a district of less elaborate
homes, and after that to a section of decidedly
poorer residences. At one of these, Stone stared
hard, but not till they were well past it, did he
inquire who lived there.</p>
<p>“Dunno,” replied Hardy; “it’s a sort of
boarding-house, I think, for the lower classes.”</p>
<p>“Is it?” said Stone, and they went on.</p>
<p>At the sanatorium they found Estelle. She
was not hysterical now, but was in a sort of
apathetic mood, and listless of manner.</p>
<p>Stone spoke to her with polite address, and
a manner distinctly reassuring.</p>
<p>“It will be much better for you, Estelle,”
he said, pleasantly, “if you will speak the truth.
Better for you, and better for——you know
whom.”</p>
<p>His significant tone roused her, “I don’t
know who you mean,” she exclaimed.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_165">[165]</div>
<p>“Oh, yes, you do! somebody whose name
begins with H, or B, or S.”</p>
<p>“I don’t know any one beginning with S,”
and Estelle frowned defiantly.</p>
<p>“But some one with——” Stone leaned forward,
and in the tense pause that followed,
Estelle’s lips half formed a silent ‘B’.</p>
<p>“Yes,” went on Stone, as if he had not
paused. “If you will tell the whole truth, it
will be better for Bates in the long run.”</p>
<p>Estelle began to tremble. “What do you
know?” she cried out, and showed signs of hysteria.</p>
<p>“I know a great deal,” said Stone, gravely,
“and, unless assisted by what you know, my
knowledge will bring trouble to your friend.”</p>
<p>“What do you want me to tell you?” and
Estelle, now on her guard, spoke slowly and
clearly, but her fingers were nervously twining
themselves in and out of her crumpled handkerchief.</p>
<p>“Only your own individual part in the proceedings.
The rest we will learn from Bates
himself.”</p>
<p>“How do you know it was Bates?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_166">[166]</div>
<p>“We have learned much since you left Garden
Steps,” and now Stone spoke a little more
sternly. Hardy looked at him in wonder. Who
was this Bates, clearly implicated in the murder,
and known to Estelle?</p>
<p>“You see, Mr. Haviland saw you go down to
open the window for him to come in,” Stone
went on, as casually as if he were retailing innocent
gossip. “Did you go down again and
close it?”</p>
<p>“I haven’t said I opened it yet,” and Estelle
flashed an irate glance at her questioner.</p>
<p>“No, but you will do so when you realize
how necessary it is. I tell you truly, when I
say that only your honesty now can save your
friend Bates from the electric chair.”</p>
<p>Estelle shuddered and began to cry violently.</p>
<p>“That only makes matters worse,” said
Stone patiently. “Listen to me. This is your
only chance to save Bates’ life. If I go to the
police with what I know, they will convict him
of the murder beyond all doubt. If you tell me
what I ask,—I think, I hope, between us, we can
prove that he did not do it.”</p>
<p>“But didn’t he?” and Estelle looked up with
hope dawning in her eyes.</p>
<p>“<i>I</i> think not. Now there’s no time to waste.
Tell me what I ask or you will lose your chance
to do so. You opened the living-room window
for Bates to come in, at about three o’clock?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_167">[167]</div>
<p>“Yes,” admitted the girl.</p>
<p>“And went down and closed and fastened it
at——”</p>
<p>“Five o’clock,” came in lowest tones.</p>
<p>“Not knowing that Miss Carrington was
dead?”</p>
<p>“Oh, <i>No</i>!”</p>
<p>“For Bates went there only to steal the
jewels?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“And so, when you took the breakfast tray,
and found the lady—as you did find her—you
were frightened out of your wits, and dropped
the tray?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“And so, to shield Bates, who you thought
had killed her, you lied right and left, even trying
to incriminate Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
<p>“Have you seen Bates since?”</p>
<p>“No, sir.”</p>
<p>“And until now you have thought he killed
your mistress?”</p>
<p>“I didn’t know.”</p>
<p>“Another thing, Estelle; you put bromide in
the glass of milk in order that Miss Carrington
might sleep soundly, and not hear Bates come
in?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_168">[168]</div>
<p>“She didn’t drink that milk!”</p>
<p>“But you fixed it, thinking she would?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“That’s all. Come on, Hardy.” and somewhat
unceremoniously, Stone took leave, and
made for the nearest telephone station.</p>
<p>After that, matters whizzed. Stone had
called the Police Headquarters and asked that
an officer be sent with a warrant for the arrest
of Bates.</p>
<p>“How do you know where he is?” asked
Hardy, nearly bursting with curiosity.</p>
<p>“I’m not sure, but at least I know where to
start looking for him,” Stone replied, as the two
went back the way they had come.</p>
<p>Stone stopped at the boarding-house he had
noticed on the way to the sanatorium, and rang
the bell.</p>
<p>Sure enough, Bates lived there and Bates was
at home.</p>
<p>At Stone’s first questions he broke down and
confessed to the assault with the black-jack.</p>
<p>“But I didn’t kill her!” he cried, “she was
already dead! Oh, my God! can I ever forget
those terrible, staring eyes! The saints forgive
me! I was half crazy. There she was, dead, and
yet smiling and happy looking! Oh, sir, what
does it all mean?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_169">[169]</div>
<h2 id="c13"><span class="small">XIII</span> <br/>BATES, THE BURGLAR</h2>
<p>Brought before the magistrate, Bates told
a coherent though amazing story.</p>
<p>It seems he was Estelle’s lover, and had long
ago persuaded her to let him know when Miss
Carrington had a quantity of jewelry in the
house, that he might essay a robbery. The plan
was simple. Estelle had promised to slip downstairs
at three o’clock and raise a window for
his entrance, and later, but before any one else
was about, she was to slip down and lock it
again. In the meantime, they assumed, the
burglary would be quietly accomplished, their
supposition being that Miss Carrington would
be asleep in her bedroom, and the boudoir easy
of access.</p>
<p>“You entered by the window, then, at what
time?” asked Stone, who was doing most of the
questioning.</p>
<p>“At quarter of four in the morning,” replied
Bates, and all noted that this was shortly
before the hour when Mrs. Frothingham saw
through her field-glass a man leaving by the
same window.</p>
<p>“You went directly up the stairs?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_170">[170]</div>
<p>“Yes; Estelle had often told me the lay of
the rooms, and I went straight to the lady’s
boodore.”</p>
<p>“You carried with you a ‘black-jack.’ Did
you have murder in your heart?”</p>
<p>“That I did not! I took that, thinkin’ if the
lady woke up and screamed, I’d just give her
a tap that would put her to sleep without hurtin’
her at all, at all. I’m no murderer, Sir, and I’m
confessin’ my attempt at burglary, and—and
assault, so I won’t be accused of a greater
crime.”</p>
<p>“That’s right, Bates, it’ll be better for you
to be perfectly truthful. Now, what did you see
when you entered the room?”</p>
<p>“I had stepped inside and shut the door before
I saw anything, and then, I turned to see
the lady’s face, but in the mirror. I was behind
her, and in the glass I saw her smilin’ face,
and of course, I thought she was alive, and that
she saw me. I knew she’d scream in a minute,
and the sight of all the jewels gleamin’ on her
neck drove me fair crazy with greed, I suppose,
and I up with my sandbag, and hit her head, not
meanin’ to hit hard enough to kill her, but only
to knock her unconscious-like.”</p>
<p>“And then?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_171">[171]</div>
<p>“The blow smashed the big comb she was
wearin’ but she didn’t move nor fall over. She
was leanin’ back in her big chair, and she jest sat
there, and kept on smilin’. My knees shook like
the ague, for I thought it was magic, or that
my eyes was deceivin’ me. There was no sound
anywhere, and I stood starin’ at that smilin’
face and she starin’ back at me! I nearly
screamed out myself! But I bucked up, and
thinkin’ that she was struck unconscious so
quick, her face didn’t change, I made to take off
some of the jewels I was after. I touched her
neck and it was cold! The lady was dead! Had
been dead some time, I was sure, ’cause she was
so cold and stiff. I trembled all over, but my
only thought then was to get out. Not for a
million dollars would I touch them sparklers!
There ain’t often a burglar who is ghoul enough
to rob a corpse! Leastways, <i>I’m</i> not. I
wouldn’t. I wouldn’t! I’m a tough and a bad
egg generally, but I wouldn’t steal from no
corpse! Not I!”</p>
<p>“So you left the house at once?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_172">[172]</div>
<p>“That I did, as fast as my tremblin’ legs
could get me downstairs. I was clean daft. I
couldn’t make it out and I didn’t try. I thought
it was the Devil’s own work, somehow, but how,
I didn’t know. My mind was full, makin’ my
escape. I ran like the old boy was after me, and
reachin’ home, I hid under me bedclothes and
groaned all night. Full a week went by, and I
begun to breathe easy, thinkin’ I’d never be suspected
of a hand in it, when up comes this
gentleman, and says I done it. Well, I’ve told
the truth now, and I’m relieved to get it off my
chest.”</p>
<p>Bates heaved a deep sigh, as of a man eased
of a great burden. His whole story bore the
stamp of truth, and his manner of telling was
straightforward and earnest. Nor was there
reason for doubt. Though a startling tale, it
entirely explained many of the strange conditions
that had seemed so bewildering. It would
never have occurred to Bates nor to any one to
make up such a yarn, and what else could have
deterred him from the contemplated robbery
but the superstition that makes even the most
hardened criminals refuse to steal from a dead
person? Therefore, the narrative was accepted
as probably true, and Bates was taken to the
Tombs to await further proceedings against
him.</p>
<p>“You’re a wonder!” said Gray Haviland,
as, that same afternoon, he discussed the matter
with Fleming Stone. “Would you mind telling
me how you went straight to the criminal
and walked him off to jail?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_173">[173]</div>
<p>“That was practically a bit of luck,” and
Stone smiled. “It was the black-jack that gave
me the clue. If the fellow hadn’t dropped that
in his fright, we might never have traced him.
Though we would perhaps have found him
eventually, through the maid, Estelle. She is
not good at keeping things secret. However, he
did drop the weapon, and it led straight to
him.”</p>
<p>“But how?”</p>
<p>“Well, the thing smelled strongly of creosote.
Now, it was made from a bit of old cloth
that looked like a piece of some discarded garment,—a
man’s coat, say. If the odor had been
camphor or moth balls, I should have assumed
a garment laid away in storage, but creosote is
not used for that purpose. So I deduced a
house recently remodeled by use of a certain
kind of shingles. I know that the odor of those
shingles clings to everything in the house for
months. It is almost ineradicable. So I looked
about for a house lately reshingled.”</p>
<p>“Why not a new house?” asked Hardy, who
was present.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_174">[174]</div>
<p>“A point well taken,” said Stone, nodding
approval, “but in a new house the odor often
is dispelled before the people move in. In a remodeled
house, the furnishings stay there
during the work and so are deeply impregnated
with that unmistakable smell of creosote. At
any rate, I worked on that, and when I found
that a newly shingled old house was a boarding-house
of the type Bates would be likely to live
in, I went there to see, and found him.”</p>
<p>“Yes, but how did you know there was such
a person as Bates? Where did you get his
name?”</p>
<p>“From your cook,” returned Stone, simply.
“I concluded there was no doubt that Estelle
had let the man in and relocked the window
afterward. So I deduced a friend of the girl’s
so dear to her that she would do this for him.
I asked the cook, Mrs. Haskins, as to Estelle’s
admirers and learned that there were two,
Bates and Higgins. Mrs. Haskins couldn’t say
which one Estelle more favored, so I decided to
try both. Bates—the cook told me—lived in a
boarding-house near here, and Higgins over in
New York. So when I asked Estelle a few leading
questions I pretended to greater knowledge
than I really had. I spoke of a name beginning
with either B, H, or S. She fell into the trap
and said quickly that she knew no one initialed
S. Then I said, ‘but beginning with——’ and
waited; she said no name, but involuntarily her
lips form a silent ‘B,’ and I knew she had Bates
in mind. The rest was easy. Bates, the boarding-house
and the shingles formed a combination
too indicative to be merely coincidence.
And so we found him. And I, for one, believe
his story. I know the strong superstition that
imbues those people concerning a corpse, and
the unexpected discovery that he had attacked
one was enough to make that man beside himself.
Indeed, it’s a wonder that he didn’t himself make
an outcry in his terror and fright.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_175">[175]</div>
<p>“I have heard of your prowess in these
matters,” said Haviland, “but I didn’t look for
such quick work as this. Why, you hadn’t even
interviewed Estelle when you came to your
conclusions about Bates.”</p>
<p>“No, but remember, I have seen a full account
of all the evidence, not only at the inquest,
but all that has been gathered by the
police and by Mr. Hardy here. Last night I read
all this carefully, and it was enlightening on
these points that led up to to-day’s work. But,
now, I don’t mind telling you, Mr. Haviland,
that a much more difficult and complicated
problem faces us, to discover who gave to Miss
Carrington the poison that killed her.”</p>
<p>“Have you any suspicions?” and Gray
looked the Detective straight in the eyes.</p>
<p>“I have not, as yet,” and Fleming Stone returned
the steady gaze. “Have you?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_176">[176]</div>
<p>Gray Haviland hesitated. Then he said: “I
would rather not answer that question, Mr.
Stone. If I should have suspicions, and they
should be unjust or ill-founded, is it not better to
leave them unmentioned, even to you? You are
here to discover the criminal. I can not think my
suspicions, if I have any, could help you, but they
might easily hinder you by wrong suggestion.”</p>
<p>“Very well, Mr. Haviland, just as you
please. But I assume you will tell me frankly
anything you may know or learn in the way of
direct evidence bearing on the matter?”</p>
<p>“That, certainly.” But though Haviland’s
words were a definite promise, his tone and
manner seemed hesitant, and a trifle vague.</p>
<p>“Am I to have the privilege of working with
you, Mr. Stone?” inquired Hardy, his heart
beating tumultuously lest he receive a negative
answer.</p>
<p>“If you care to. And if you are willing to
work in my way. I am somewhat impatient of
interference or questioning. But, if you want to
assist in investigating, under my absolute
orders, I shall be glad to have you do so.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_177">[177]</div>
<p>Nothing was further from Hardy’s mind
than to interfere or to show any undue curiosity
concerning the work or methods of the great
Detective. He was more than content to watch
silently, to run errands, and to make himself
useful in any way desired by his superior. He
said this, and Stone nodded indulgently.</p>
<p>“I shall begin with this matter of the arrest
of Count Charlier,” said Stone, as he looked
over his note-book. “Either that man is the
guilty party or he is not. If not, he must be
released. If so, it must be proven. What do
you know of his history, Mr. Haviland?”</p>
<p>“Very little, Mr. Stone. In the first place,
I doubt his right to the title he assumes.”</p>
<p>“You do? And why?”</p>
<p>Haviland looked a little embarrassed. “I’m
not sure I know why. But he doesn’t act like a
real Count.”</p>
<p>“Yes? And how do real Counts act, I mean
in ways that differ from this man’s habits?”</p>
<p>“You’re having fun with me, Mr. Stone,”
and Gray blushed like a school-boy. “But I
mean it. It’s this way. I’m not a Count, but if
I wanted to pretend I was, I’d act just as Count
Charlier does. There!”</p>
<p>“Good! That’s definite, at least. Now
make it a little more so by describing some of
these actions.”</p>
<p>“Well,” and Haviland’s brow wrinkled,
“well, to begin with, his manners are too slick
and polished.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_178">[178]</div>
<p>“A traditional trait of Frenchmen.”</p>
<p>“Yes, if real. But his seem artificially, purposely,—oh,
<i>fakely</i> polished! Have you seen
him, Mr. Stone?”</p>
<p>“No, not yet.”</p>
<p>“When you do, you’ll see what I mean. He
has shifty eyes, and he rubs his hands together,
and if he’s standing, he half bows with every
sentence he utters, and he smirks instead of
smiling, and his whole attitude is a fifty-fifty of
apology and bumptiousness.”</p>
<p>“Bravo! You’ve given a graphic picture of
him at all events. I’ll reserve further consideration
of his personality until I have seen him.”</p>
<p>“You believe implicitly all that story of
Bates, do you, Mr. Stone?” and Haviland looked
dubiously at the Detective.</p>
<p>“Yes, I do, at present. If anything turns up
to disprove any part of it I may have to revise
my ideas. But just now, it seems to me that
Bates told the simple truth. To be sure, he only
told it because he feared an accusation of murder,
and he knew that to confess to the lesser
crime would go far to help him deny the
greater.”</p>
<p>“You may be right. But might there not
be collusion between Friend Count and Bates?”</p>
<p>“Collusion?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_179">[179]</div>
<p>“Just that,” and Gray shook his head doggedly.
“I’ve a vague idea that Frenchy is
mixed up in this thing somehow. Now, he
couldn’t possibly have administered the poison,
himself, personally, nor could he have struck
the blow personally, but couldn’t he have hired
the man Bates to do it for him?”</p>
<p>“On the face of things, Mr. Haviland, does
that look plausible? Is the Count, as you describe
him, a man who would engage a burglar
of the Bates type to commit a brutal crime?
Again, if Bates were merely the Count’s tool,
would he not, when caught, pass the blame on to
his employer?”</p>
<p>“He sure would! You are right, Mr. Stone,
those two never hooked up together! It’s out
of the question. But as Estelle and Bates are
in cahoots, why didn’t she give Miss Carrington
the poison, herself?”</p>
<p>“Well, she did fix the bromide, hoping to make
her mistress sleep soundly. But the lady never
took it. Now, if the maid had given or expected
to give the poison, why the bromide at all?”</p>
<p>“But, look here,” broke in Hardy, “mightn’t
it be that Estelle did do the poisoning and arranged
the bromide as a blind, to put us off the
track, exactly as it has done?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_180">[180]</div>
<p>“There’s small use speculating about that
poison,” said Stone thoughtfully, “we must go
at that systematically. We must find out where
it was bought and by whom. People can’t go
round buying deadly poison without a record
being made of the sale. We must inquire of
druggists, until we find out these facts.”</p>
<p>“There’s no druggist about here who would
sell aconitine,” said Hardy, “it doubtless was
bought in New York.”</p>
<p>“That, of course, adds to the difficulty of
tracing the sale, but it must be done. Mr.
Hardy, I will ask you to do all you can to find
out about that.”</p>
<p>“You want to look up a French apothecary,”
advised Haviland. “That Count is at the
bottom of this, as sure as shootin’, and he’s full
clever enough to hide his tracks mighty closely.
Why, that man is a fortune-hunter and an adventurer,
and he wanted that ten thousand
dollars, and he poisoned Miss Lucy to get it!
That’s what he did! And he was on deck that
night, after the jewels, that’s where he was!
It was he in that room talking, it was he who
left his glove there,—of course, he didn’t know
it,—and now you’ve got him under lock and key,
I hope you’ll keep him there, and not let this
Bates discovery get him the slip. If the two
were not working together, then, surely they
are incriminated separately, and you want to
look into the case of little old Mr. Count!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_181">[181]</div>
<p>“You may be right, Mr. Haviland,” and
Fleming Stone smiled at him, “but I think you
are assuming a lot because of your prejudice
against the Frenchman. Was he very attentive
to Miss Carrington? Had he proposed marriage
to her?”</p>
<p>“That we don’t know. Of course, we had all
been afraid he would——”</p>
<p>“Why afraid?”</p>
<p>“Oh, we didn’t want my cousin to marry
an adventurer. Of course, he only wanted her
fortune, and as her business manager, I had a
right to interfere, or at least, to look after her
interests enough to prevent that.”</p>
<p>“But was she not a capable woman, who could
be supposed to know her own mind?”</p>
<p>“Ordinarily, yes. But, there’s no use mincing
matters. Miss Carrington greatly desired
to marry. However, she paid no attention to
men whom she did not consider interesting.
There were several such, and she sent them
packing. The Count, though, she took to at
once, partly because of his title and partly because,—well,
he has a way with him. He flattered
her, and she took the bait like a hungry
fish!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_182">[182]</div>
<h2 id="c14"><span class="small">XIV</span> <br/>WHO GAVE THE POISON?</h2>
<p>Though Fleming Stone’s acumen and quick
perception had led to a swift apprehension of
Bates, his next steps were not taken so rapidly.
He spent much time in the boudoir of Miss Carrington,
as if striving to make the walls tell what
their traditional ears had heard.</p>
<p>The upset breakfast tray had been removed,
but nothing else disturbed. Estelle had owned
up, after Bates’ arrest, that she did drop the
tray, in her fright at the sight of the dead lady,
and that she afterward denied it lest she be suspected
of wrong-doing.</p>
<p>The plate that had contained sandwiches
was still on the bedside table, but the glass of
milk, with bromide in, had been carried away.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_183">[183]</div>
<p>Stone looked at the empty plate, and wondered.
Had the poison been placed in the sandwiches?
By Estelle? By anybody else? Who
had had opportunity? Estelle had brought the
sandwiches and milk to the bedroom, according
to her usual custom, when she prepared the bed
for the night. A tiny serviette had been over
the sandwiches, and was still there beside the
plate. Stone looked at it. A mere wisp of fine
linen, with a monogrammed corner. The few
wrinkles in it showed clearly to Stone’s sharp
eyes the dainty touch of fingers that had held
the caviare sandwich. It undoubtedly denoted
that Miss Carrington had eaten the sandwich.
Had any one merely removed it, the napkin
would have been uncreased. He had been told
that she rarely ate this night luncheon, though
it was always placed for her. Why had she partaken
of it on that particular night? Had some
one advised her to? Or urged it? Had the
Count really visited her in the boudoir, and
having previously arranged the poisoned sandwich,
made sure that it would perform its
deadly mission? Could he have entered the
room unknown to the rest of the household?</p>
<p>Stone went to the window. Yes, that matter
was easy enough. A balcony outside the long
French window was connected with the lower
verandah by a spiral staircase. Any one could
run up the steps and be admitted to the boudoir
in perfect secrecy. Stone wondered for a moment
why Bates hadn’t entered that way, and
quickly realized that for a marauder to appear
at the window would have frightened Miss Carrington
and caused an outcry. The entrance of
the Count, however, whether expected or not,
would be easily effected.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_184">[184]</div>
<p>If the Count were really guilty, the circumstances
were all explicable. Suppose Miss Carrington
had made the appointment. Would she
not, in her vanity, have donned the beautiful
boudoir gown and the jewels to appear attractive
in his eyes? And, supposing she had playfully
caught his glove as he removed it, and had
half-unconsciously continued to hold it. Then
the conversation alleged to have been overheard
by Miss Frayne would have been addressed to
him, and the remarks would be, at least, intelligible.</p>
<p>The snake? Ah, yes, the snake. As to that
there was no hint, no clue of any sort. But
then, the thing was so inexplicable, that the explanation
<i>must</i> be easy. A clue so strange, so
bizarre, must lead somewhere. That could be
left to the future. Now, he must decide on his
first steps.</p>
<p>The decision took him to call on Doctor Stanton,
and the physician welcomed him warmly.</p>
<p>“Glad to see you, Mr. Stone,” he said; “sit
down, sir, sit down. I’ve been wanting a talk
with you ever since I heard of your arrival. So
you’ve ferreted out the burglar already! Great
work, great work indeed! And now for the real
murderer. You see, sir, I’m up to the minute in
my information regarding this case.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_185">[185]</div>
<p>“Glad to know it,” returned Stone. “Now,
Doctor Stanton, I hope you can help me. I don’t
mind admitting the thing has its baffling aspects.
The burglar was easily traced, and easily disposed
of. The real work, as you say, is just
beginning. Will you, sir, tell me all you know
of the poison that killed Miss Carrington?”</p>
<p>“Surely, Mr. Stone. The autopsy showed a
fatal dose of aconitine. Aconite, as you of
course know, is the herb, wolfsbane, of the Hellebore
tribe, all the species of which are poisonous.
Aconitine is an intensely poisonous
alkaloid obtained from aconite. Taken in a
moderate quantity, it acts as a powerful sedative,
but the dose absorbed by Miss Carrington
was undoubtedly fatal within half or three-quarters
of an hour.”</p>
<p>“And she died at what time?”</p>
<p>“About two o’clock.”</p>
<p>“Proving she took the poison at about quarter
or half after one.”</p>
<p>“Yes; thereabouts. It is not possible to fix
these hours precisely, but the poison was administered
positively between one and two.”</p>
<p>“Administered? You do not think then,
that she took it herself?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_186">[186]</div>
<p>“Most certainly not! Miss Carrington has
been in my care, professionally, for many years.
I knew her very well, and I know nobody more
opposed to medicine in any form or drugs of any
sort. It was a most difficult task to persuade
her to take even the simplest remedy, and then
she had to be assured over and over again that
it was harmless. No, Mr. Stone, nothing could
have made her take that dose of her own accord,
nor could any one have persuaded her to take it,
consciously. It was, without doubt, given to
her secretly, by the clever ruse of the murderer.
Of course it could not have been an accident.
The marvelous part is, to my mind, how any one
secured the poison. It is not an easy matter to
buy aconitine.”</p>
<p>“Then that ought to make it easier to trace.
If the public could easily procure it at will, there
would be greater difficulty in running down the
purchaser.”</p>
<p>“That is so; and yet, I think your search will
be a hard one. How shall you go about it?”</p>
<p>“By canvassing the drug shops of the city,
and of the small towns as well.”</p>
<p>“It may be you can trace the sale. But if it
was bought under promise of secrecy, and if
that secrecy were well paid for——?”</p>
<p>“True, there is the difficulty. But what’s a
detective for if not to find out secrets?”</p>
<p>“Quite right. May your quest succeed.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_187">[187]</div>
<p>“And now, a little more about the action of
this poison. What are the immediate effects of
a fatal dose?”</p>
<p>“In a few moments there occurs a tingling
numbness of lip and tongue and pharynx. The
numbness increases and affects all the muscles
and death ensues inside of an hour. This paralyzing
effect renders it impossible for the victim
to cry out, and there are no convulsions. The
body remains calm and undisturbed, and the eyes
open. A dilatation of the pupil takes place, but
the expression on the face remains as in life.
This is why Miss Carrington continued to look
happy and smiling——”</p>
<p>“And proves that when she took the poison
she was happy and smiling, and therefore in no
way terrorized or frightened into it.”</p>
<p>“Exactly so. And that indicates that she
didn’t know she was taking it,——”</p>
<p>“Or, that it was administered by some one
she knew and loved and had all confidence in.”</p>
<p>“It would seem so,” and Doctor Stanton’s
fine old face showed a sad apprehension.</p>
<p>“How was it taken,—in what medium?”</p>
<p>“That we can’t tell to a certainty. There
were traces of the sandwiches discovered at the
autopsy, but, though the poison could have been
given her, concealed in a sandwich filling, it is
improbable.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_188">[188]</div>
<p>“Why?”</p>
<p>“Because the white granules or powder,
which are soluble in water, would be more easily
discerned in solid food.”</p>
<p>“But, on the other hand, it could be unostentatiously
placed in a sandwich, with little
fear of detection; but to prevail on her to swallow
a solution,—it is bitter, is it not?”</p>
<p>“Yes, slightly so. I admit, I cannot imagine
any one inducing Miss Carrington to swallow
such a draught. Therefore, it may well be, it was
placed in a sandwich. The filling, they tell me, was
caviare, which would disguise the bitterness.”</p>
<p>“And does not all this, if true, point to some
one exceedingly familiar with all the details of
Miss Carrington’s affairs? Some one who knew
of her nightly sandwich? And, also, does it not
imply the presence of some one who could and
did insure her consumption of that sandwich?”</p>
<p>“It would indeed seem so, Mr. Stone; but
when it comes to discussing such a question as
that, I must ask to be allowed to retire from the
field. It is my duty to tell all I know, from my
medical experience, but further than that I am
not obliged to express any opinions or voice any
suspicions.”</p>
<p>“You know, however, that Count Charlier is
held pending investigation?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_189">[189]</div>
<p>“Yes, I know it. I have no opinion to
express.”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone rather admired this gentleman
of the old school, whose courtesy was evident,
but equally so his determination to say only
what justice demanded of his profession.</p>
<p>And then, like a flash, the reason came to him.
Doctor Stanton suspected, or at least feared to
suspect some member of the Carrington household.</p>
<p>Of course, this was not a new idea to Fleming
Stone. He had mentally gone over the possibility
of every one in the family and all of the servants
at Garden Steps, but so far he had held his
mind open for impressions rather than to formulate
theories himself.</p>
<p>“Then, to sum up, doctor,” he said, as he
rose to go, “you assure me that you consider it
out of the question that Miss Carrington took
the aconitine herself, say, as a headache cure, or
something, intending only a small curative
dose?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_190">[190]</div>
<p>“Absolutely impossible, sir,” exclaimed the
old gentleman, almost angrily; “to begin with,
Miss Carrington never had headaches, and if she
had she would have borne any amount of suffering
from them before she would have touched a
drug or a medicinal remedy of any sort. And,
aside from all that, how could she get aconitine?
It is not to be bought for the asking at any druggist’s!
No, sir, my conscience makes me insist
on that point, Miss Carrington never took that
poison knowingly,—either by accident or design.
It was given to her, without her knowledge, by
a very, very clever villain.”</p>
<p>“Again, then, could it have been given her
innocently, by mistake? I mean, if some one,
her maid, or any friend, had wanted to give her
a sedative, and meant only a light dose, but by
error in quantity——”</p>
<p>“No, sir! Not a chance! The amount given
was too great to be an error. And every one in
that house knows better than ever to have attempted
to give medicine in any form or degree
or for any purpose to Miss Lucy Carrington.”</p>
<p>“It was crime, then,” said Fleming Stone,
“black crime. And as such, it must be discovered
and punished.”</p>
<p>“Yes,” agreed Doctor Stanton, but he spoke
with deep sadness and as one who feared where
or toward whom such discoveries might lead.</p>
<p>From the doctor’s house Stone went to see
the Count.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_191">[191]</div>
<p>That elegant gentleman was highly irate at
being detained against his will in such plain
quarters as The Tombs furnished, but he was not
as belligerent or vindictive as Stone expected to
find him.</p>
<p>Hasty work on the part of the detectives from
the District Attorney’s office had resulted in his
imprisonment, but the later development of
Bates’ share in the matter made it extremely
probable that the Count might soon be released
from custody.</p>
<p>Pleasantly enough the two men conversed,
and Count Charlier gave the impression of one
glad of help from an outside source.</p>
<p>“It is such absurdity,” he declared, “to
think I would in any way wish harm to the lady.
Why, I admired her above all, and it was my
hope that she would do me the honor to accept my
hand.”</p>
<p>“Honestly, Count Charlier?” and Stone
looked at him with a man-to-man glance that
caused the Count to hesitate in his protestations.</p>
<p>“Well, I was considering the matter in my
own mind. You know, Mr. Stone, it is a great
responsibility, this seeking a wife. And Miss
Carrington was not—not in her first youth. Of
a fact, her years outnumbered my own. So, I
asked myself was it wise, was it altogether just
to the lady to——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_192">[192]</div>
<p>“Never mind all that, Count,” said Stone, a
little impatiently, “just give me a few details of
that evening, so far as your actions were concerned.
You were at the house till midnight?”</p>
<p>“Yes, Mr. Illsley and I left together. We
had spent the evening there at cards and music.”</p>
<p>“You had had any private conversation with
Miss Carrington during the evening?”</p>
<p>“Yes, we walked alone in the conservatory
for a time,——”</p>
<p>“You proposed marriage?”</p>
<p>“Not exactly that,—but I may have hinted
at such an event.”</p>
<p>“And the lady seemed agreeable?”</p>
<p>“Entirely so. If I may say it, she met my advances
half-way, and I could not misunderstand
her feeling toward my unworthy self.”</p>
<p>“She spoke to you of money matters? Of
her will?”</p>
<p>“Yes, to my surprise, she told me she had
bequeathed to me ten thousand dollars.”</p>
<p>“Was not this a strange bequest to a casual
acquaintance?”</p>
<p>“Oh, we were more than casual acquaintances.
I have known Miss Carrington for two
or three months.”</p>
<p>“Which? two or three?”</p>
<p>“Perhaps nearer two,” and the Count
showed a slight embarrassment.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_193">[193]</div>
<p>“Do your friends often leave you large sums
of money on such short acquaintance?”</p>
<p>“It has never happened before,” and now the
Count’s dignity was touched and he spoke
shortly and coolly.</p>
<p>“Then, of course, it struck you as peculiar,”
and Stone’s smile assumed an acquiescence.</p>
<p>But the Count returned: “Not at all. Miss
Carrington was an unusual woman, and I never
expected her behavior to be entirely conventional.
When she told me of this I was simply
and honestly grateful, as I should have been to
any one who showed me such a kindness.”</p>
<p>“You were glad to get the money, then?”</p>
<p>“Yes, indeed!” the Count exclaimed, with
sparkling eyes, then realizing his slip, he hastily
added: “that is, I was glad of the knowledge that
it would come to me some day. Surely I did not
want the lady to die, that I might receive it, but
I was pleased to know she thought enough of
me to make the direction.”</p>
<p>“What did she mean by saying ‘To-morrow
all will be different’?”</p>
<p>“That I do not know. Could she have
meant——”</p>
<p>“She did say it, then? You admit she said it
to you?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_194">[194]</div>
<p>Breathlessly, Fleming Stone waited the
answer. Miss Carrington had said this to the
person who was with her behind her closed door
at one o’clock! Could the Count be going to incriminate
himself?</p>
<p>“Not to me only. She said it to all who were
present. It was while we were playing bridge.”</p>
<p>“She said it again to the man who killed
her!”</p>
<p>“Of that I know nothing,” said Count
Charlier, politely.</p>
<p>“Bother!” said Fleming Stone, inaudibly.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_195">[195]</div>
<h2 id="c15"><span class="small">XV</span> <br/>PAULINE’S PURCHASE</h2>
<p>Alone, Fleming Stone wrestled with the
problem of the giving of that poison.</p>
<p>The library at Garden Steps had been turned
over to him for a study and no one entered the
room unless summoned. Stone sat at the mahogany
table-desk, but his eyes rested unseeingly
on the beautiful fittings of polished silver and
glass. On a memorandum block he wrote down
the names of possible and probable suspects. To
be sure, he thought, every one in the house might
be deemed possible, as well as some who were not
in the house. But each one must be taken into
consideration.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_196">[196]</div>
<p>To begin with the most important, Miss
Stuart. It was possible that she poisoned her
aunt, but so improbable as to make it exceedingly
unlikely. True, she was heir to half the
fortune, but well-bred, well-nurtured young
women do not commit crime to inherit their
money sooner. Except for that conversation
reported by Anita Frayne, there was not a shred
of evidence against Miss Stuart. And Stone did
not place implicit confidence in that story of the
talk behind closed doors. He had discovered
that the two girls were not friendly and he knew
Anita capable of making up or coloring a tale
to suit herself. Pauline had told him that she
was in the hall-window-seat at one o’clock that
night and had seen Anita coming from Miss
Carrington’s room. Or, to put it more carefully,
she had seen her with her hand on the door-knob,
in the act of closing the door after her. This
Pauline had told to Stone, with an air of such
verity and truthfulness that he was fain to believe
her. However, in all honesty, he had to
admit to himself, that Miss Stuart <i>could</i> have
given the poison in some secret way, had she so
desired. The same was true, though, of Miss
Frayne, of Haviland and of the various house-servants.
But where could any of them get it?</p>
<p>Again there were the Count and Mrs. Frothingham
to be considered. In fact, there were too
many suspects to decide among, without further
evidence.</p>
<p>“Any luck?” Stone asked of Hardy, who
came in to report.</p>
<p>“No, Mr. Stone. I’ve raked the drug shops
thoroughly, and there’s no trace of a sale of
aconitine. It’s practically impossible to buy
such a substance. I mean, for the ordinary customer.”</p>
<p>“Yet somebody did.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_197">[197]</div>
<p>“I suppose so. But doesn’t it limit the field
of search to realize that it couldn’t have been
a servant or either of the young ladies?”</p>
<p>“Why neither of the young ladies?”</p>
<p>“But how could they get it?”</p>
<p>“Why not as well as any one else? And
somebody did.”</p>
<p>“Then somebody stole it. Nobody bought it.
I’m positive of that, now I’ve learned how impossible
it is to make such a purchase. And how
could those girls steal it?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_198">[198]</div>
<p>“I don’t know, Hardy, but my point is, why
couldn’t they steal it if anybody could? You’re
denying their ability to steal the poison, because
you don’t want to suspect them. And neither do
I, but we must look this thing squarely in the
face. Somebody managed to get that aconitine
and administer it to Miss Carrington secretly,
and it is for us to find out who did it,—who
<i>could</i> do it, in the face of almost insuperable obstacles.
But it is futile to say this one or that
one could or couldn’t do it. Now, since you’ve
found no trace of the poison sale, let’s start from
some other point. Surely, this case, with its
unique circumstances, offers many ways to look
for evidence. What strikes me most forcibly is
the costume of the lady. Not so much the gown,—I
believe she was fond of elaborate boudoir
robes,—but the array of jewelry, the glittering
scarf and the snake. Most of all, the snake. That,
of itself, ought to point directly to the true solution,
and I believe it does, only we’re too blind to
see it. I’m going to work on that snake clue, and
to help, I wish you’d go at once to all the possible
shops where it might have been bought. It may
not be traceable and then, again, it may. And,
the strange fact of her sitting idly before the
mirror when she died! Whoever gave her the
poison was there on the spot, must have been,—for
it’s sure enough that she didn’t take it herself,
according to the doctor’s statements.
Well, if the murderer was right there with her,
and she not only made no outcry but continued
to look smiling and happy, it was surely some
one she knew and in whom she had all confidence.
Perhaps this person urged her to eat the sandwich,—oh,
pshaw, that’s all plausible enough,—but,
the snake! That’s the bizarre clue that
must lead somewhere. And it shall! I’ll ferret
out the mystery of that paper snake or my
name’s not Stone! Go to it, Hardy! Rake the
Japanese shops and department stores, but find
out who bought it. It isn’t old. I observed it
was fresh and new. Those flimsy paper things
show handling mighty quickly. Find out who
bought the thing, and we’ve a start in the right
direction.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_199">[199]</div>
<p>Hardy went off on his errand and Stone went
over to have a talk with Mrs. Frothingham.</p>
<p>The widow was amiable but non-committal.
She was highly incensed at the arrest of the
Count, but felt confident he would be liberated
in a few days. She replied warily to Stone’s
questions, but admitted her presence in the
house on the fatal evening.</p>
<p>“You see,” she said, in a confidential way,
“I was lonely. The Count had gone so often of
late to Garden Steps, and I was never invited,
that I think I was a little jealous.”</p>
<p>“Of Miss Carrington?” asked Stone, quickly.</p>
<p>“Yes,” said Mrs. Frothingham, frankly;
“and of Miss Stuart, and of the Count’s intimacy
over there. I had never even been in the
house. So I went over there and looked in the
windows. I saw them playing cards and later
strolling about the rooms. The great door
stood a little ajar and I cautiously stepped inside.
It was vulgarly curious, but it was no
crime. As I stood in the hall I saw some one approaching,
and stepped up a few steps of the
staircase. It was all so beautiful that I looked at
the tapestries and decorations. I remember
thinking that if any one challenged me, I should
tell the truth, and say that I came in to look, as a
neighbor ought to have a right to do.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_200">[200]</div>
<p>“Never mind the ethics of the case, Mrs.
Frothingham, stick to facts. Did you go upstairs?”</p>
<p>“No, indeed, only up four or five steps, just
to the turn of the staircase.”</p>
<p>“But Mr. Illsley saw you coming down.”</p>
<p>“Only those few steps. He couldn’t have
seen me coming from the top of the stair, for I
didn’t go up so far.”</p>
<p>“You spoke of being jealous of Miss Stuart.
Why?”</p>
<p>“Because Count Charlier is in love with
her.”</p>
<p>“With Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>“Yes; he was making up to Miss Carrington
for her money, but he is really in love with
Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>Mrs. Frothingham shook her head doggedly,
as if determined to tell this, even though it should
redound to the Count’s discredit. And it did.</p>
<p>“Then,” said Fleming Stone, “that adds
motive to the theory of the Count’s guilt. If he
is in love with Miss Stuart, might he not have
been tempted to put Miss Carrington out of the
way, that Miss Stuart should inherit the fortune,
and be the bride of his choice?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_201">[201]</div>
<p>“Indeed, yes, that is a possibility,” and
Fleming Stone saw at last, that this woman
either suspected the Count’s guilt or wished
to make it appear so.</p>
<p>Again, the sudden thought struck him, suppose
she was so jealous of the Count’s attentions
to Miss Carrington, that she went to Garden
Steps with the intent of killing the lady. Suppose
she did go upstairs, although she denied it,
and put the poison in the sandwich. Surely, she
had opportunity. Surely, she would now deny it.</p>
<p>Fleming Stone sighed. He hated a case
where the principal witnesses were women. One
never could tell when they were lying. A man,
now, was much more transparent and his evidence
more easily weighed.</p>
<p>However, if this woman desired to turn suspicion
toward Count Charlier, it was either because
she suspected him, or was implicated
herself. In either case, her word was not worth
much, and Stone soon took his leave to hunt a
more promising field.</p>
<p>Returning to Garden Steps, he found that
Pauline had received a letter from her cousin in
Egypt.</p>
<p>“I am afraid,” she said, as she handed Stone
the letter to read, “that my cousin Carr will
think we are not accomplishing much. Read the
letter, Mr. Stone, and if you say so, I will ask
Mr. Loria to come home.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_202">[202]</div>
<p>Glad to read the letter from this half heir to
the Carrington fortune, Stone took the sheet. It
ran:</p>
<blockquote>
<p><span class="sc">Dear Polly:</span></p>
<p>The awful shock of Aunt Lucy’s death leaves me without
words to tell you what I feel for you in your dark hours. What
<i>can</i> I say in the face of such a horror? I wish I were there with
you to help you bear it all. For on you comes the brunt of the
publicity and all the harrowing details that must be attended
to. If you say so, I will return to America at once. But
unless I can be of definite assistance or real comfort to you, personally,
I would rather not go over just now. I’m just starting
on a wonderful piece of work here. No less than excavating—but
I won’t take time to tell of it now. I’ll write you about
it later, if I don’t go to you. This is a short note to catch the
mail, and reach you as soon as possible. Remember, as I
write, I have only your first two cables, and know nothing of
details. I eagerly await your letters. Why don’t you follow
out your plan of coming over here in February? Leave all
business matters in Haviland’s hands, and get away from the
scene of the tragedy. Of course, as I cabled Gray, get the best
possible detective experts on the case. Spare no expense, and
charge all to me. Surely, we want to find and punish the
slayer of Aunt Lucy, and I repeat, if you, for any reason, want
me to, I will come over at once. Cable, and I will take the next
steamer. If you don’t do this, do write me long letters and tell
me everything that is happening. Poor Aunt Lucy. I know
your life with her wasn’t all a bed of roses, but I know how
saddened you are now, and my heart goes out to you. Dear
Polly, command me in any way. I am entirely at your service
here or there. If you come over here, I advise Haviland to
stay there and look after things. I know the bulk of Aunt
Lucy’s fortune is divided between you and me, and I want Gray
to see to all matters connected with my share. When he gets
around to it, he can send me some money to further this work I
am engaged on here. But let me know if you want me to come
to you. With all loving sympathy and affection,</p>
<p><span class="jr"><span class="sc">Carr</span>.</span></p>
</blockquote>
<div class="pb" id="Page_203">[203]</div>
<p>Fleming Stone pondered over this letter. He
had felt a certain curiosity concerning this absent
cousin, who was heir to half the great fortune,
and so would have had a possible motive for
a crime that would secure his inheritance to
him at once. But there was no possible way of
connecting a man in Egypt with a deed committed
in the victim’s boudoir. Vague thoughts
of Loria’s employing somebody to do the deed
for him formed themselves in Stone’s mind, but
were soon dismissed as untenable. The man
Bates could not be a tool of anybody, and beside,
he didn’t kill the lady. The poison did
that. The Count couldn’t be a tool of any one.
He was too evidently his own master, and
whether guilty or not, was entirely on his own
initiative. Oh, the whole idea was absurd.
The letter itself was sufficient exoneration for
Loria. He was absorbed in his research work
and though thoughtful enough of Pauline’s
wishes, he was apparently not anxious to have
his plans over there interrupted. He wrote like
a good all round chap, and Fleming Stone could
find no peg on which to hang a suspicion in his
case.</p>
<p>“A good letter,” he commented, returning it
to Pauline; “what’s your cousin like?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_204">[204]</div>
<p>“In looks? A little like me, but bigger and
darker. He’s a fine-looking man, and a kind-hearted
one. I shall advise him not to come home,
for I know how interested he is in his work, and
he can do no good here. Can he, Mr. Stone?”</p>
<p>“Frankly, Miss Stuart, I don’t see how he
can. I may as well admit to you, the case seems
to me a most baffling one. The assault with the
black-jack is, of course, accounted for, but we
have made no progress in the matter of discovering
the poisoner. I feel that the solution of the
mystery is closely connected with that paper
snake. Can you give me any idea where the
thing could have come from? Do you think Miss
Carrington bought it herself?”</p>
<p>“I am sure she did not,” returned Pauline,
but her voice and intonation were such that
Stone turned quickly to look at her. She had
gone pale, and her eyes looked frightened. “Oh,
no,” she went on, hurriedly, “Aunt Lucy would
never buy such a thing. She hated snakes.”</p>
<p>“I know that, but she must have gotten it
somewhere. It is easier to think she put it round
her throat herself than to think she let some one
else do it.”</p>
<p>“Why do you say that?” and now Pauline
looked angry. “It is incredible that she should
have put that thing round her own neck! What
could have induced her to do it?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_205">[205]</div>
<p>“There seems to be no theory to fit the
facts,” said Stone, wearily, “so we must try to
get some facts that may suggest a theory. You
think, Miss Stuart, that you saw Miss Frayne
leaving Miss Carrington’s room late that
night?”</p>
<p>“I know I saw her with her hand on the door-knob,”
returned Pauline steadily, and just then
Anita herself burst into the room. “That is a
falsehood!” she cried, and her big blue eyes
flashed angrily; “how could you see me, when
you were yourself in Miss Carrington’s room?”</p>
<p>This was what Stone had wanted, to get these
two girls at variance; and he helped along by
saying, “Were you, Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>“Certainly not!” cried Pauline.</p>
<p>“You were!” Anita flung back. “Miss Carrington
was talking to you! She said she wished
her face was as beautiful as yours! To whom
else could she have said that? Surely not to the
Count! One doesn’t call a man beautiful. And
we all know that Miss Carrington admired your
looks and lamented her own lack of beauty.”</p>
<p>“All that applies equally well to yourself,”
and Pauline gazed steadily at the blonde beauty
of Anita. “Why wasn’t all that speech addressed
to your own attractive face, and you
repeat it to incriminate me?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_206">[206]</div>
<p>Here was an idea. Stone wondered if it
could be that Anita was in the boudoir and to
turn suspicion from herself tried to pretend she
had heard Pauline in there.</p>
<p>“And she said you were fond of pearls!”
went on Pauline. “Your admiration for my
aunt’s pearls is an open secret!”</p>
<p>It was. Often had Anita said how much she
preferred the soft lustre of pearls to the dazzling
sparkle of other gems.</p>
<p>“And she left you ten thousand dollars in her
will,” continued Pauline, more as if thinking
these things over aloud than as if accusing Anita
of crime.</p>
<p>“Wait, Miss Stuart,” cried Stone; “what
are you doing? Implying that Miss Frayne had
anything to do with the tragedy?”</p>
<p>“I am implying nothing. I am trying to see
how far the accusations she makes against me
will fit her own case. You remember she said
my aunt proposed to leave my share of the fortune
to some one else, but Carr’s share must remain
untouched. Well, to whom else could she
think of giving my share, but to this scheming
girl who tried her best to get my portion, but did
not succeed?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_207">[207]</div>
<p>Anita struggled to reply, but words would
not come. So furious that she could not articulate,
she gurgled hysterically, when into the
room came Haviland and Hardy. Both looked
exceedingly grave, and Gray went at once to
Pauline and put his hand kindly on her shoulder.
Then he suddenly caught sight of Anita and her
evident distress, and leaving Pauline he went
over to the other and put his arms gently round
her.</p>
<p>“What is it, Anita?” he said. “What has
upset you so?”</p>
<p>“Pauline!” was all Anita could say, when
she was interrupted by Hardy.</p>
<p>“Let me speak first,” he said, for he saw
there was dissension between the two girls. “I
have made a discovery. At Mr. Stone’s directions
I have been investigating shops where the
paper snake might have been bought, and I have
learned that one was bought at Vantine’s recently
by Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>“Ah,” said Fleming Stone gravely, “did you
buy one, Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>Pauline hesitated. She was white as chalk,
and her lips quivered.</p>
<p>“Of course she did!” screamed Anita,
greatly excited; “she did, and she was in there
talking to Miss Carrington, just as I said! And
she put that thing round her neck to frighten
her! And then she gave her the poison, and
then she came away and left her to die! All
alone by herself! The fiend!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_208">[208]</div>
<p>“There, there, Anita, hush,” and Haviland
tried to soothe the frantic exclamation of the
girl.</p>
<p>Pauline stood waiting, in silence. At last she
said, “When you remove that ranting woman,
I will answer your question, Mr. Stone.”</p>
<p>“You’ll answer it now!” cried Anita. “In
my presence, and at once.”</p>
<p><SPAN href="#front">“I think you must answer, Miss Stuart,” said Stone, gently.</SPAN>
“Did you buy a paper snake?”</p>
<p>“I did,” said Pauline, and added in a low
tone, “A long time ago,—this can’t be the same
one.”</p>
<p>“The date of the sale is about a week before
the death of Miss Carrington,” went on Hardy,
merciless in his statements.</p>
<p>“For what purpose did you purchase it?”
asked Stone, a little sternly.</p>
<p>Pauline now drew herself up, proudly. “I
bought it,” she said, in clear, distinct tones, “because
my aunt instructed me to get it for her.”</p>
<p>There was a silence; and then, “Oh, come
now, Pauline, you can’t expect us to swallow
that!” Gray Haviland said, with a tolerant smile
at her. “Try again.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_209">[209]</div>
<p>“That’s the truth,” said Pauline, but her
voice trembled, and with a half-stifled exclamation
of despair, she ran out of the room.</p>
<p>“Stop, Pauline, where are you going?” cried
Haviland as he ran after her.</p>
<p>“Don’t touch me!” she cried. “I’m going to
cable Carr to come home! He’s the only one who
can help me! You’re so wrapped up in Anita
that you can’t tell truth from falsehood. Carr
will know what to do,—and I shall send for him.”</p>
<p>“Wait, Miss Stuart,” said Fleming Stone,
gravely; “you may cable Mr. Loria, if you
choose, but for a few moments I must claim your
attention. It is, to my mind, of the greatest
importance to learn the details of the purchase
of that paper snake, and I must ask you to tell
us the circumstances of your aunt’s request for
it.”</p>
<p>“There is little to tell,” said Pauline, in a
hesitant way. “It was one day when I was going
over to New York that Aunt Lucy just said,
casually, to get her one of those Japanese paper
snakes from Vantine’s, and I did.”</p>
<p>“That’s enough!” cried Anita. “Miss Carrington
<i>never</i> sent for a snake! <i>never</i> in the
world! You’ll be saying next she told you to get
her some aconite to poison herself with!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_210">[210]</div>
<h2 id="c16"><span class="small">XVI</span> <br/>THE TWO GIRLS</h2>
<p>“Miss Stuart,” and Fleming Stone’s voice,
though gentle, had a ring of decision, “if I am
to go on with this case, I must insist on your
entire confidence, and absolute,——” he hesitated
over the word, “truthfulness.”</p>
<p>The two were alone. After the altercation
between Pauline and Anita, Stone had requested
the others to leave them, and he determined to
get at the truth of this marvelous statement
about the purchase of the snake.</p>
<p>“I understand, and you are quite right,”
murmured Pauline, her manner quiet, her tone
even, but in the dark eyes raised to his Fleming
Stone saw fear,—definite, unmistakable fear.</p>
<p>“Then explain, for I am sure you can, why
you suppressed the fact of your own purchase
of that paper snake until forced to admit it.”</p>
<p>“I was afraid.” The beautiful face was of a
creamy pallor and the scarlet lips quivered.
But this evident agitation on Miss Stuart’s part
did not deter Stone from his probing queries.</p>
<p>“Why were you afraid? Afraid of what?”</p>
<p>“Afraid that if you knew I bought the snake
you would think I was in some way connected
with—with the crime——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_211">[211]</div>
<p>“But don’t you see that to attempt to conceal
the fact of your purchase makes any such suspicion
more imminent?”</p>
<p>“You <i>don’t</i> think I would—would——”</p>
<p>“I don’t want to <i>think</i> anything about it,
Miss Stuart. I want to <i>know</i>, and I want you to
tell me all about your aunt’s strange request for
you to buy a thing she so feared and abhorred.”</p>
<p>“I don’t understand it myself. But Aunt
Lucy was full of vagaries and would often ask
me to buy strange or outlandish things for her.”</p>
<p>“But not of a <i>reptilian</i> nature?”</p>
<p>“No, she had never done such a thing
before.”</p>
<p>“Did she give no reason for the request?
Make no apology or explanation?”</p>
<p>“No. I was just leaving her, when she called
me back, and said, ‘Won’t you stop in at some
Japanese shop, and get me a paper snake?’ and
I exclaimed in surprise at the request. Then she
lost her temper and said she supposed she knew
what she wanted and for me to get it without further
to-do. So I did.”</p>
<p>“And when you brought it to her?”</p>
<p>“She merely took it and laid it in a desk
drawer, without even unwrapping the parcel. I
never saw it again till I saw it round her neck.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_212">[212]</div>
<p>“And you do not think she placed it there
herself?”</p>
<p>“I am sure she did not. The only reason I
can ascribe for her wanting it, is that she might
have thought her dread of them a foolish whim
and determined to accustom herself to the sight
of them by means of the harmless toy. That’s all
I know about that snake, Mr. Stone. But the
truth, as I have told it to you, is so strange, so
almost unbelievable, that I knew it would only
serve to attract suspicion to me, so I denied it.
You know Miss Frayne is only waiting to pounce
on it as complete evidence of my guilt.”</p>
<p>“You and she are not good friends?”</p>
<p>“We have never been really friendly, though
always polite on the surface of things. But she
is jealous of me, and tried in every possible way
to undermine my aunt’s faith and trust in me,
and even plotted to have me disinherited and my
fortune bequeathed to herself.”</p>
<p>“An ambitious plan!”</p>
<p>“She is ambitious. She intends to marry
Mr. Haviland, and she intended to have my half
of the Carrington money.”</p>
<p>“You don’t suspect her of the crime!” and
Fleming Stone looked up quickly.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_213">[213]</div>
<p>“Suspect is too strong a word. But to me
there seems room for grave inquiries. I was in
the hall at the time she declares I was in my
aunt’s room,——”</p>
<p>“Wait a moment, Miss Stuart, isn’t this a
sort of deadlock? You say you were in the hall,
Miss Frayne says you were in the boudoir. Why
should I believe one in preference to the other?”</p>
<p>There was infinite sadness in Pauline’s eyes
as she looked at her questioner. “That is so,”
she said, slowly; “why should you? I have only
my unsupported word. Nor has Anita any witness.
But, Mr. Stone, I thought a Detective
always looked first of all for the motive. What
reason could I have for—for killing my aunt?”</p>
<p>“You put it plainly, Miss Stuart, and I will
reply in an equally straightforward vein. The
first thing we detectives think of is, who will
benefit by the crime? Naturally, money benefit
is first thought of. The greatest money benefit
comes to you and your cousin in Egypt. The
nature of the crime makes it impossible that he
could have committed it. There is, however, a
possibility of your own connection with it, so
we must question you. But there are others who
benefit in a pecuniary way by the death of Miss
Carrington, so they too must be questioned.
You surely see the justice and the necessity of
all this investigation?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_214">[214]</div>
<p>“Oh, yes, and it seems to me also justice that
you investigate the story of Miss Frayne. She,
too, has only her own unsupported word as to
that conversation she relates. May she not have
made it all up?”</p>
<p>“She has a witness, Miss Stuart, a credible
witness. Mr. Haviland has told me that he saw
Miss Frayne at the door of the boudoir at about
quarter past one.”</p>
<p>“Gray saw her! He didn’t tell me this. Mr.
Stone, I hate to speak ill of another woman, but
Miss Frayne can really wind Gray Haviland
round her finger, and I have no doubt she
has persuaded him to give this evidence,
whether——”</p>
<p>“Whether it is true or not?”</p>
<p>“Yes, that is what I meant, though I hated
to say it.”</p>
<p>“Miss Stuart, it is often hard to tell when
a man speaks the truth, but I have no reason to
disbelieve Mr. Haviland’s statement. He told
quite circumstantially of being up and down
all night. He was restless and wandered about
in several rooms during the small hours. You
know he told of seeing the maid on the stairs.
And he gives me the impression of a truthful
witness who would not lie outright, even at the
behest of a woman in whom he is interested.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_215">[215]</div>
<p>“Then they are going to suspect me?” Pauline’s
voice was so full of despair that Fleming
Stone caught his breath as he looked at her. Her
great eyes were wide with fear, her hands were
clenched and her whole body tense with horrified
suspense.</p>
<p>“Give me some good reasons why you can
not be suspected,” he cried, eagerly leaning
forward in his chair. “Give me some proof that
you were in the hall at that moment, or that you
were in your own room, or——”</p>
<p>“That proves, Mr. Stone, that you <i>do</i> suspect
me! Your assumption that I could have been in
my own room shows that you do not believe I
was in the hall,—as I was.”</p>
<p>“Then why didn’t Miss Frayne see you
there?”</p>
<p>“How do you know she didn’t? Why do you
accept her words as truth, yet disbelieve
mine?” Pauline had risen now and stood before
him. Her tall slimness, her wonderful grace
and her beautiful, angry countenance made an
alluring picture. “I was not in favor of your
taking this case, Mr. Stone, and I am even less
so, now, that you refuse to believe what I say!
I shall cable at once for my cousin to return.
I do not wish Gray Haviland and Anita Frayne
to arrange all this to suit themselves. I am
mistress here, in Mr. Loria’s absence, and if my
authority is doubted I want him here to stand
up for me!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_216">[216]</div>
<p>“Just a moment, Miss Stuart. You are not
entirely just to me. It is necessary for me to
question you, but you must see that your innocence—of
which I have no doubt—will be
more easily established by a policy of frankness
on your part, than by futile anger toward Miss
Frayne or Mr. Haviland. The incident of the
paper snake, as explained by you, is not necessarily
incriminating, and if you will wait a few
days before calling your cousin home, I think
very likely you will prefer not to do so. I understand
that you do not wish him to come home,
unless he can be of assistance to you?”</p>
<p>“Yes, that is his desire, to stay over there
unless I want him. But, Mr. Stone,” and now
the lovely face was almost smiling, “if you mean
what you said, that <i>you</i> do not doubt my innocence,
then I will not send for Mr. Loria. I am
content to let it all rest in your hands.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_217">[217]</div>
<p>The girl’s beauty now was dazzling. Color
showed in her cheeks, her eyes shone, and the
curve of her exquisite red lips was almost a
smile. Stone looked at her in amazement. He
had spoken truly, he had not doubted her innocence,
but this sudden elation on her part
puzzled him. What did it mean? Only, as she
meant it to seem, that if he believed in her innocence
it could be easily proved? Well, he
would accept that diagnosis of her attitude, but
he would move warily. This case was unlike
any other he had ever engaged in, so he must
attack it in a different way. And first of all, he
must decide which of these two women was
speaking the truth. Yet, how could he decide?
If Pauline had been in that room when Anita
listened at the door, she would, of course, try to
prove that she was elsewhere. But, in such a
case, why not say she was in her own room?
It wasn’t plausible that she should confess to
being in the hall, if she were really in the boudoir.
That, then, was in Pauline’s favor. But
the conversation detailed by Anita? That must
be further analyzed.</p>
<p>These thoughts flew through Stone’s quick-moving
brain as he stood looking at his beautiful
hostess.</p>
<p>“Puzzling it out, Mr. Stone?” and Pauline’s
smile was a full-fledged one now; “perhaps I
can help you. If you’ll accept my assistance
without doubting my word, I’m sure we can do
wonders in a detective way.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_218">[218]</div>
<p>This was not in Pauline’s favor. It was too
much like bargaining with him to believe her
innocent. Then, too, though all unconscious of
it, Stone was influenced by the wonderful charm
of the girl. Though her lips were smiling a
little, her great dark eyes still held that look of
fear, that hunger for protection, that desire for
some one on whom to lean.</p>
<p>“And I won’t send for my cousin just yet,”
she went on. “It’s too bad to call him home
when he’s so busy over there. You know, Mr.
Stone, that Mr. Loria is a wonderful man. His
achievements in excavation have brought him
fame and glory. And you mustn’t think he’s
heartless because he doesn’t return at once. You
know it was all arranged for us to go over there
next month and he had made all sorts of plans
for us and for himself. He can’t leave his work
at a moment’s notice, unless, as he says, I have
need of him.”</p>
<p>“Was he fond of his aunt?” inquired Stone,
casually.</p>
<p>“He was her idol. To Aunt Lucy the sun
rose and set in Carr. She was perfectly crazy to
go on this trip to Egypt, in order to be with
him. He was fond of her, yes. More so than I
was, because she was always kind and good-natured
to him, while she was always unpleasant
to me.”</p>
<p>“Why was she?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_219">[219]</div>
<p>“I don’t know. Well, I suppose I may as
well tell you, one reason was because she was
always envious of any one whom she considered
better-looking than she was herself.
This may sound strange to you, Mr. Stone, but
it was the key-note of my aunt’s existence. She
adored beauty in every way,—pictures, clothes,
everything,—but she was so sensitive about her
own plainness, that a younger or prettier face
made her, at times, irritable and even cruel. She
would never engage a servant with any pretensions
to good looks. Therefore, as she chose to
consider Miss Frayne and myself of comely personal
appearance, she was unkind to us both.”</p>
<p>“And Mr. Loria? Is he not handsome?”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, very. But Aunt Lucy liked handsome
men. Carr Loria is like a picture. His
father was of Italian descent, and Carr has the
clear olive skin and dark beauty of that race.
Gray Haviland is good-looking, too, but it was
only feminine prettiness that stirred up Aunt
Lucy’s ire.”</p>
<p>“Why did she ever engage such an angel-face
as Miss Frayne?”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone watched closely for a sign of
irritation at this speech, and saw it. Pauline’s
smile faded, and she said, abruptly:</p>
<p>“Do you think her so beautiful?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_220">[220]</div>
<p>“She has the perfect blonde fairness usually
typified by the celestial white-robed creatures
on the old canvases.”</p>
<p>“Yes, Anita <i>is</i> a perfect example of a blonde.
Why, she is the daughter of an old school-mate
of my aunt’s, and so that’s why Aunt Lucy took
her, and then she proved such an efficient secretary
and such a patient, meek thing to scold,
that she kept her position.”</p>
<p>“Miss Frayne doesn’t seem so extraordinarily
meek to me.”</p>
<p>“No, indeed! She’s not meek at all. But
she always was to Miss Carrington. That, of
course, to keep the position, which was both easy
and lucrative. Easy, that is, except for my
aunt’s temper. That was vented on poor Anita,
morning, noon and night.”</p>
<p>“That, then, might give us a motive for Miss
Frayne’s desire to be rid of her cruel mistress
and to get the inheritance that she knew would
come to her at Miss Carrington’s death.”</p>
<p>Pauline shuddered. “I can’t think of such a
thing, Mr. Stone, but, if anybody in this house
is to be suspected of the awful thing, it can be
no one but Anita. She tried, I know, to supplant
me in my aunt’s affection, and to have my inheritance,
or part of it, transferred to herself.”</p>
<p>“You know this?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_221">[221]</div>
<p>“Yes. For some time she has been making
insinuations and telling my aunt tales about
me,—untrue ones,—that would make Aunt Lucy
angry at me. I tell you this, Mr. Stone, because
I want you to know Anita Frayne as she really
is.”</p>
<p>There was the ring of sincerity in the tone,
there was a look of truth in the big, dark eyes,
and there was a most appealing expression on
the lovely face that gazed into his own, but
Fleming Stone turned from the speaker with a
polite but decided gesture of dismissal, saying,
“Please ask Miss Frayne to come here a few
moments.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_222">[222]</div>
<h2 id="c17"><span class="small">XVII</span> <br/>THE OVERHEARD CONVERSATION</h2>
<p>Awaiting the arrival of Anita Frayne, Stone
thought rapidly. Forming his judgments, as always,
more by impressions than by words, he
found himself believing in Pauline Stuart. She
had bought the paper snake, she had lied about
it, but many women would have done the same.
Knowing that the purchase of the toy meant
definite suspicion, wouldn’t any innocent girl
have feared and dreaded that exposure? If she
had been guilty, she would scarcely have dared
deny the facts of buying it, lest it be proved
against her, and make matters worse. Again,
it was impossible to connect that magnificent
woman with crime! If she were connected with
it, it could only be as the criminal herself. There
was no theory that admitted of her being an accomplice,
or a tool. Stay, there was that Loria
man. Stone couldn’t rid himself of a vague
idea of implicating the distant nephew by means
of an accomplice on the spot. But the notion
was not logical. If Pauline had killed her aunt
under her cousin’s instructions, she was just as
much a murderer as if she had done it entirely
of her own initiative. And if the two cousins had
conspired or worked in collusion, it was Stone’s
duty to fasten the deed on Pauline, as the available
one of the pair. Stone ran over in his
mind the letter from Loria. It gave no hint of
greed or cupidity in his nature. He was engrossed
in the pursuit of his hobby, archæology,
and was only willing to leave his work if that
would definitely please his cousin, on whom, he
fully appreciated, the responsibilities of the occasion
would fall. He fully trusted Gray Haviland
to look after all business affairs, so he was
not a suspicious or over-careful nature. He
asked no immediate money and only desired
some, in the course of time, to further his work.
Whatever might be the truth, there was no reason
to cast a glance of suspicion toward Carrington
Loria. His opinion of Pauline’s possible
guilt Stone held in abeyance, and Miss Frayne
entering, he greeted her with punctilious politeness
and a confidential air, tending to put her at
ease.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_223">[223]</div>
<p>“Miss Frayne,” he began, “the situation is
a grave one. I am forced to the conclusion, tentatively
at least, that Miss Carrington was deliberately
poisoned by some one in her own
household. It may have been a servant, but it is
difficult to imagine how or why a servant could
accomplish the deed. At any rate, I must first
consider the members of the family, and in so
doing, I must request absolute truth and sincerity
from all.”</p>
<p>“I’m sure I’ve no reason to equivocate, Mr.
Stone,” and Anita’s voice was almost flippant.
“All I’ve told about what I heard at Miss Carrington’s
door is absolutely true, and I can repeat
it word for word.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_224">[224]</div>
<p>“It seems strange you have it so accurately
at your tongue’s end.”</p>
<p>“Not at all. I went to my room and wrote it
down as soon as I heard it. I often make such
memoranda. They are frequently useful later.”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone mused. This seemed a strange
thing to do, at least in view of the later events,
but then, if Miss Frayne had been the guilty one,
and had made up all this story of overheard conversation,
surely she would not have done
anything so peculiar as to make that detailed
memorandum; or if she did, would not have told
of it.</p>
<p>“I have, of course, a copy of that memorandum,”
continued Stone; “what I want is for you
to tell me again why you think it could not have
been entirely a soliloquy on the part of Miss
Carrington.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_225">[225]</div>
<p>“For two reasons. First, I have lived with
the lady for four years, and never have I known
her to talk to herself or soliloquize aloud. Of
course, this does not prove that she never did
so, but I know it was not her habit. Second, nobody
in soliloquy ever would use that definite intonation
which is always used in speaking <i>to</i>
a person. You know yourself, Mr. Stone, that a
soliloquy is voiced slowly, mumblingly, and
usually in disjointed or partially incoherent sentences.
The talk I heard was in clear concise
speeches unmistakably addressed to somebody
present. She could not in a soliloquy use that
direct form of address, even if talking to some
one in her imagination. She would not keep it
up, but would go off in a reverie or drop into
impersonal thought. I wish I could make this
more clear to you.”</p>
<p>“You do make it clear, Miss Frayne. I know
just what you mean. I quite agree that one could
easily tell the difference between a spoken soliloquy
and remarks addressed to a hearer. But
you heard no replies?”</p>
<p>“None at all. But I hold that is not peculiar,
for while Miss Carrington’s voice was especially
high and carrying, an ordinarily low voice would
not be audible through that closed door. You
can prove that by simple experiment.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_226">[226]</div>
<p>“I have,” said Fleming Stone. “I have
tried it, and as you say, an ordinary voice in a
low tone is not audible. But Miss Carrington’s
must have been raised unnecessarily, to allow of
its being heard.”</p>
<p>Stone watched Anita’s face as she listened
to this. But she only replied, with a shrug of indifference,
“I can’t say as to that. I heard
every word clearly, that’s all I can tell.”</p>
<p>“Suppose she had been talking to a picture
of some one, say a photograph of Miss Stuart or
of Mr. Loria, or of Count Charlier, would her
tone of voice then be explicable?”</p>
<p>“Perhaps. But she would have had to
imagine vividly the person there before her.
And, again, Miss Carrington had no such photographs
in her rooms. All her family photographs
are in this library, in frames or cases.
She was methodical in such matters. She has
series of pictures of Miss Stuart and of Mr.
Loria from their childhood to now, but they are
all in order in the cases over there.” Anita
made a slight motion of her hand toward a
mahogany cabinet. “No, Mr. Stone, whomever
or whatever Miss Carrington was talking to, it
was not a photograph of any of her relatives or
friends. As you know, there was none discovered
in her room, so what could she have
done with it?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_227">[227]</div>
<p>“That’s true, Miss Frayne. But hasn’t the
theory of a living person in there also inexplicable
points? If somebody was there, it was,
of course, some one well known and whose presence
in the house was unquestionably correct.
But her remarks, as I read them from your
notes, imply different auditors. Granting for
a moment that Miss Stuart was there, why
would Miss Carrington say, ‘Henri, Henri, you
are the mark I aim at’?”</p>
<p>“I admit that must have been a soliloquy, or
an apostrophe to the man she wanted to marry,
though he was not present.”</p>
<p>“You have no thought, then, that Count
Charlier was present?”</p>
<p>“Certainly not! The idea is absurd. Miss
Stuart was in there with her aunt, and I’m sure
it was some remark of Pauline’s, which I, of
course, did not hear, that made Miss Carrington
speak of the Count as if to him.”</p>
<p>“How, then, do you account for the presence
of Count Charlier’s glove?”</p>
<p>“Miss Stuart put it there as a blind.”</p>
<p>“And how did Miss Stuart get it?”</p>
<p>“Easily. The Count had been spending the
evening here. He may have left his glove by
mistake,—or——”</p>
<p>“Or——?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_228">[228]</div>
<p>“Or Pauline may have abstracted it purposely
from his coat-pocket during the evening
with a prearranged plan to do all just as she did
do.”</p>
<p>“Miss Frayne! you can’t mean to assert your
belief that Miss Stuart so far planned the crime
as to intend to cast suspicion on Count Charlier
by means of that glove!”</p>
<p>“Why not? If Pauline Stuart is responsible
for her aunt’s death, I assure you, Mr. Stone,
she is quite clever enough to prearrange all details,
and to plan so adroitly that suspicion
should fall on some one else. Miss Stuart is far
more crafty and deep than you can have any idea
of! I have known her for four years, and I can
tell you she is far from ingenuous!”</p>
<p>“Suppose we leave the question of Miss
Stuart out of the discussion, and continue our
first line of thought. Had Miss Carrington ever
spoken to you of changing her will?”</p>
<p>As was his frequent experience, Fleming
Stone’s quick question caught his witness unaware,
and she stumbled a little in her speech, as
she replied: “N—no. Why should she?”</p>
<p>“Only because her frequent quarrels with
Miss Stuart might have made her wish to leave
less of her fortune to her niece. And in the conversation
you overheard, Miss Carrington
touched on this subject.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_229">[229]</div>
<p>“Yes, she did. But except for that reference,
spoken to her unknown companion, I have never
heard anything of such an intention on her
part.”</p>
<p>“You’re fond of pearls, Miss Frayne?”</p>
<p>“Oh, I know what you’re getting at now.
That speech Miss Lucy made about fondness for
pearls. Of course, I am. Who isn’t? I often
told Miss Carrington that I admired her pearls
far more than all her diamonds or other glittering
stones. But I wouldn’t commit a crime for
all the pearls in the world! And, if I had, why
didn’t I steal the pearls?”</p>
<p>Anita’s voice rang out triumphantly as she
put this question, but Fleming Stone said
quietly: “I haven’t accused you of crime, Miss
Frayne, but since you ask that, let me remind
you, that if the crime were done with intent of
robbery, the reason that the robbery was never
accomplished is the same that kept the man
Bates from stealing. Few people can bring
themselves to take valuables from a dead body.
However, I cannot think the poisoning was done
with any idea of direct robbery, but for the gain
that would come by the bequests of the will.”</p>
<p>“Then your search is limited by the list of
inheritors?”</p>
<p>“It is, Miss Frayne.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_230">[230]</div>
<p>“Then, Mr. Stone, how can you overlook or
undervalue the weight of evidence against Pauline
Stuart? Remember, she bought that snake
herself. Miss Lucy never told her to buy it,
<i>never</i> in this world! Pauline feared her aunt
would disinherit her——”</p>
<p>“How do you know that?” the question was
shot at her, and Anita fairly jumped as she
heard it.</p>
<p>“Why—why, you know I heard reference
made to it that night when——”</p>
<p>“When you overheard that conversation; yes,
go on.” Fleming Stone had gained his point,
which was to prove that Anita <i>did</i> know of the
proposed change in the will before that time, and
to his own belief he had proved it.</p>
<p>“Yes, I cannot doubt now that Pauline knew
her aunt intended to change her will, and so
she was so desperate at the idea of losing her
fortune, she—I cannot bear to put it in
words——”</p>
<p>“She poisoned the lady,” said Fleming
Stone, very gravely.</p>
<p>“Yes.” Anita’s voice choked, but she enunciated
the word. “Mr. Stone, you must think me
dreadful to hold these suspicions, but you asked
me to be frank——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_231">[231]</div>
<p>“And I wish you to be so. I am here, Miss
Frayne, to discover the poisoner of Miss Carrington.
It is my duty to get all possible light
on the matter from any one I can. It is the duty
of those whom I question to tell all they know,
truthfully and straightforwardly. If these
truths implicate or seem to implicate a member
of the household, none the less must the investigation
be carried on and the case be pushed to its
inevitable conclusion. The great danger lies in
mistaking opinions or imaginations for facts.
Now you are telling facts as to the words you
overheard, but you are giving only opinions as
to whom those words were addressed.”</p>
<p>“That is so,” and Anita’s gaze was a wondering
one. “But, Mr. Stone, since the <i>fact</i> of
that person in the room is undiscoverable, one
can’t help forming an opinion. Haven’t you
one?”</p>
<p>“I have.”</p>
<p>“Oh, what is it?”</p>
<p>“I think those words were spoken to some inanimate
object, not to a person. Suppose the
remark thought to be said to Count Charlier was
addressed to his glove, which she was undoubtedly
holding at the time.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_232">[232]</div>
<p>“I never thought of that, because I have assumed
that Pauline put that glove in her hand
after—after it was all over, to implicate the
Count. And, any way, that’s only that one remark,—or
two. To what inanimate object was
she talking when she said ‘To-morrow all these
jewels may be yours’?”</p>
<p>“That I cannot answer. That whole conversation
is most mysterious.”</p>
<p>“Indeed it is, Mr. Stone, under any other
hypothesis than that of the presence of Pauline
Stuart in her aunt’s room at the time!”</p>
<p>“May I come in?” and Gray Haviland’s
good-natured face appeared, as he knocked and
opened the door almost simultaneously.</p>
<p>“Yes,” said Stone, “and I will ask you, Miss
Frayne, to leave us. I am getting to work in
earnest now, and I want to push things a little.”</p>
<p>Stone watched the effect of this speech on
Anita and was not surprised to see her look at
him with startled eyes, as she unwillingly went
through the door he held open for her.</p>
<p>“What’s doing?” asked Haviland, in his
breezy way; and Stone replied, frankly: “Lots.
Those two girls are sworn foes, aren’t they?”</p>
<p>“Of late they have seemed to be. The break
came a month or more before Miss Carrington
died. Two beauties never can remain friends.”</p>
<p>“They are both beautiful women,” agreed
Stone. “Which do you think had a hand in the
tragedy?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_233">[233]</div>
<p>“Good Lord! Neither of them! What are
you talking about? That Count man is responsible
for the whole thing, Bates and all.”</p>
<p>“I know you think so, Mr. Haviland, but I
can’t agree with you. Now, look here, we’ve
got to face things squarely. Take the story Miss
Frayne tells, about that mysterious conversation.
If it were all a figment of her brain,——”</p>
<p>“What! Man, you’re crazy! Anita Frayne
make that all up out of the solid! Never, in a
thousand years! If she said that talk was
talked, it <i>was</i> talked, and that’s all there is about
that! Why or by whom it was talked, is another
matter, and as I understand it, that’s what
you’re here to find out. And, between you and
me and the arc light, I don’t believe you ever
will find out.”</p>
<p>“No?”</p>
<p>“No! And this is no aspersion on your
powers. I believe that fool Count was in there,
and as he’ll never admit it, and you’ll never believe
it, how can it be proved?”</p>
<p>“Never mind that, now. Prepare yourself,
Mr. Haviland, for some unwelcome questions.
You don’t want to, but I must insist on your answering
them. Which do you consider the more
truthful and honest of the two young women
I’ve just been talking to?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_234">[234]</div>
<p>“Nixie! You can’t get an answer to that
question out of me! Why, I’d be a cad to say
anything but that they are both impeccably
truthful and honest.”</p>
<p>“So you would, in ordinary circumstances.
But you must realize, Mr. Haviland, that I’m
here for the definite purpose of solving the mystery
of a terrible crime, and I can only do it by
inquiry and investigation. If you really refuse
to help me I must learn what I want to know in
other ways.”</p>
<p>“But, hang it, man,” and Haviland, impressed
by Stone’s manner, considered the question;
“I do think they’re both truthful,—that
is, one of them—Oh, I can’t say it! I can’t talk
against a woman!”</p>
<p>“You’ll be obliged to tell all you know,
sooner or later. If you tell me now, I truly believe
it will be better all round.”</p>
<p>“Well, then,—now wait, I’ve got to think this
thing out; I believe,—why, blessed if I don’t believe
either of them would lie if she was in a
tight place! There! you’ve made me say a nice,
honorable thing, haven’t you?” and Haviland
looked utterly disgusted with Stone and with himself
too.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_235">[235]</div>
<h2 id="c18"><span class="small">XVIII</span> <br/>FLED!</h2>
<p>The days went by, leaving the mystery unsolved.
Count Charlier was released from custody,
there not being sufficient evidence to hold
him. Bates was in jail awaiting the action of the
Grand Jury, but it was recognized that he was
not the murderer of Miss Carrington.</p>
<p>Search for the poisoner had so far been fruitless,
and the newspapers were clamoring for the
arrest of somebody. But the Police Detectives
were at their wits’ end, and even Fleming Stone
was baffled.</p>
<p>For hours, Stone sat thinking over the many
peculiar features of the case. It was not in embarrassment
that he felt himself unable as yet
to trace the criminal, it was rather with a sensation
of curiosity that he wondered what point he
had overlooked. There must be some clue, some
definite indication of what way to look, but so
far he had not perceived it.</p>
<p>So interested was he in the search that he
took no note of the passing of time or the growing
impatience of those who watched him.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_236">[236]</div>
<p>“It’s this way, Hardy,” he would say to the
younger detective, “the mystery centres about
that paper snake. When we find out the reason
for Miss Carrington’s sending for that thing,
we’ve the whole story.”</p>
<p>“You believe, then, that she did send for it?”</p>
<p>“Of course; why not?”</p>
<p>“We’ve only Miss Stuart’s word for that;
and it doesn’t seem as if Miss Carrington
would——”</p>
<p>“Nonsense! It doesn’t seem, you mean, as
if Miss Stuart would—Why, man, what possible
sense <i>could</i> there be in Miss Stuart’s buying that
snake on her own account? If she set out to
poison her aunt,—which she didn’t,—she could
have managed it in a dozen ways without lugging
in that paper reptile. In fact, it never
would have occurred to her to do so. <i>Why</i> would
she do it?”</p>
<p>“In an attempt to frighten the lady to
death?”</p>
<p>“Rubbish! The first effect of such a fright
would be a fearful outcry on Miss Carrington’s
part, and immediate discovery of the plot.
Moreover, if Miss Stuart bought that snake for
any such purpose, she would have bought it secretly;
at some little, obscure shop, not at a well-known
emporium. No, sir, the snake is the key
to the puzzle, but how? That is the question.
You see, the doctors are pretty sure that the
thing was put round the lady’s neck before she
died. Therefore she was either unconscious at
the time, or,—she was willing.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_237">[237]</div>
<p>“Never! Everybody says her fear of the
things would never let her have it put on her
willingly.”</p>
<p>“I know they say so, but they may be mistaken.
I’m beginning to evolve a theory that
will fit the facts, queer as they are. But my
theory needs a whole lot of other facts to back
it up, and those facts I can’t seem to find.”</p>
<p>“Does your theory implicate Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>“It does not.”</p>
<p>“I thought not.”</p>
<p>“You thought quite right. It does not implicate
Miss Stuart, because she is in no way
responsible for her aunt’s death. But she may
have knowledge, or she may think she has, that
is leading her to shield somebody else.”</p>
<p>“Whom?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know. She is rather a puzzling
creature. Is she—is she in love with that cousin
of hers?”</p>
<p>“Haviland?”</p>
<p>“No, the one in Egypt.”</p>
<p>“Oh, Loria. I don’t know, I’m sure. You
read his letter to her, it wasn’t in any sense a
love-letter.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_238">[238]</div>
<p>“No, but it was evidently a letter written
with the idea of other people reading it, because
of the circumstances. Of course, he wouldn’t put
any intimate talk in it. And it was typewritten,
so I couldn’t judge anything of the man from his
chirography.”</p>
<p>“Does handwriting mean much to you?”</p>
<p>“Yes, indeed. It is a wonderful expression
of character. But I don’t suppose it would declare
his adoration of a lady, unless he put it
in words also.”</p>
<p>“You don’t connect Loria with the crime in
any way, do you?”</p>
<p>“I don’t see how I can, unless in collusion
or through the assistance of Miss Stuart. And
I’m not ready to do that. I’m working now on
that conversation overheard by Miss Frayne.”</p>
<p>“You accept that whole, then?”</p>
<p>“Yes, for the simple reason that she would
not have invented all that talk. Even if she were
in the room herself, and the remarks were addressed
to her, she might be trying to lay the
blame elsewhere; to create that conversation out
of her own brain is too preposterous. You see,
Hardy, these things must be weighed in the balance
of probability. If Miss Frayne had set out
to invent a lot of stuff which she merely pretended
to overhear, she would have had two
sides to the conversation. It is that unusual
effect of one voice only that gives her story the
stamp of truth.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_239">[239]</div>
<p>“But there must have been another voice,
even though inaudible to her.”</p>
<p>“That’s just the point. There may have
been,—probably was. But if the story was her
own invention, she never would have thought of
representing that second voice as inaudible.
Now, either she did hear Miss Carrington say
those things, or she didn’t. I believe she did,
because if she hadn’t, she must have invented
the tale, and if she had invented it, it would have
been different. Likewise, Miss Stuart’s snake
story. If it were not true that her aunt asked
her to buy that snake, Miss Stuart must have
made up that yarn. And if she had made it up,
it would have been different. That’s always my
test for the truth of an amazing statement. If
the teller were falsifying, would he tell it that
way? If so, then it is probably a lie: if not, then
probably it is a true bill. Now they say Miss
Carrington had a high, shrill voice. Did you
ever hear it, Hardy?”</p>
<p>“No. I never knew the lady. But I’ve heard
a record of it on the phonograph, and it is high,
and rather thin.”</p>
<p>“On the phonograph? How does that
happen?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_240">[240]</div>
<p>“Gray Haviland is a dabster at that sort of
thing, and he has people sing for him and make
records frequently. And once I heard that they
had a record of the dead woman’s singing, and
I asked to hear it, merely out of curiosity or a
general interest. And it contained some spoken
words too, and her speaking voice is high and
shrill, just such as would carry through a closed
door. You can, of course, hear the record, if you
care to.”</p>
<p>“I do care to. I’ll make a note of that. Now,
here’s another thing. Miss Stuart has declared
that she obliterated a footprint which was noticeable
in that powder scattered by the dressing-table.”</p>
<p>“Yes, I know it. And Haviland states that
it was he who wiped out that print! What do
you make of that?”</p>
<p>“That Haviland did do it, and Miss Stuart
fibbed about it to shield Haviland.”</p>
<p>“Oh, so it’s Haviland you think Miss Pauline
is shielding?”</p>
<p>“I think it may be; at any rate, she suspects
some one dear to her and——”</p>
<p>“You’re ’way off, Mr. Stone! If you’ll excuse
my saying so, Miss Stuart has pulled the
wool over your eyes until you don’t know where
you’re at.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_241">[241]</div>
<p>Fleming Stone gasped. Pulled wool over his
eyes! Over the eyes, the gimlet eyes, the all-seeing
eyes of Fleming Stone! What could the
man mean? And this so-called wool pulled by
a woman! What unheard-of absurdity!</p>
<p>“Mr. Hardy,——” he began.</p>
<p>“Yes, yes, I know. Nothing of the sort, and
all that. But it’s true, Mr. Stone. Miss Stuart
is a siren from Sirenville. She can make any
man think black is white if she chooses. And
she has been bullied and cowed by that old aunt
of hers for years, and for my part, I don’t blame
her for getting to the end of her rope. If
she——”</p>
<p>“Stop! Mr. Hardy, I know you think you’re
right, but you are not! Do you hear, you are
not! And I’ll prove it to you, and that soon! I’ll
ferret out this thing, and I’ll do it on this new
theory of mine whether you believe it or not!”</p>
<p>Hardy looked at the man in amazement. He
had expected a different mode of procedure from
this talented sleuth. He had looked for a quiet,
even icy, demeanor, and magical and instantaneous
solution of all mystery. And here was the
great man, clearly baffled at the queerly tangled
web of evidence, and, moreover, caught in the
toils of a woman whom Hardy fully believed to
be the criminal herself.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_242">[242]</div>
<p>But he only said quietly, “What way does
your theory point, Mr. Stone? I may be able to
help you.”</p>
<p>“You can’t, Hardy, because you’re so determined
to find Miss Stuart guilty that you
couldn’t see it as I do. You consider the strange
features of this case—and Lord knows they <i>are</i>
strange!—separately, whereas they must be
looked at as a whole. The gown, the quantity of
jewelry, the smiling face, the glove, the overheard
conversation,—all these points are to be
considered as of one import,—as leading to
one conclusion. And you think of them as implicating—separately,
mind you—Miss Stuart,
Miss Frayne, and the noble Count. Now, all
those queer points are not only connected, but
identical in their significance. But never mind
that. Here’s the place to begin. Miss Carrington
was poisoned. She didn’t poison herself.
Who did?”</p>
<p>“Mr. Stone, you have put it tersely. I entirely
agree that all we are seeking is the answer
to that last question of yours.”</p>
<p>“I will yet give it to you,” and Fleming Stone
spoke solemnly rather than boastingly. “The
poison, the aconitine, was taken by Miss Carrington
as she sat there at her own dressing-table.
She took it willingly, smilingly,——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_243">[243]</div>
<p>“Yes, because she didn’t know she was taking
it. When she ate the sandwich——”</p>
<p>“The poison wasn’t in the sandwich. She
took that poison in water. The tumbler and
spoon that were used are even now on the glass
shelf in her bath-room.”</p>
<p>“You know this?”</p>
<p>“I know that in the glass that now stands
there a chemist has found a slight trace of
aconite. I took the glass myself to be tested,
with that result. This is not a great discovery,
it merely proves that the poison was administered
in water, not in a sandwich.”</p>
<p>“But it also means that it was given to her
by some one who could persuade her to take the
solution, unquestioningly,—not under compulsion.”</p>
<p>“It would seem so.”</p>
<p>“And that points to Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>“Not necessarily. Hardy, I refuse to discuss
these things with you if you avow everything
to condemn her. Why does what I have
just told you point to Miss Stuart any more
than any one else in the house? Why not Miss
Frayne? Or Haviland?”</p>
<p>“Pshaw! Nobody suspects Gray Haviland.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_244">[244]</div>
<p>“But why not? If you’re merely suspecting
here and there without definite reason, why not
include him on your list? And here’s another
thing. Whoever mixed that poison in the glass
of water, afterward rinsed the glass and returned
it to its place in the bath-room? This was
either done at the time, that is, before the lady
died, or later on, after death had ensued. In
either case, it opens up a field of conjecture.”</p>
<p>“It doesn’t with me,” said Hardy, bluntly.
“There’s no room for conjecture. It simply
piles up the proof against Miss Stuart, and all
your skill and even your will can’t get her off.”</p>
<p>A low moan was heard and a sound as of a
falling body. Stone sprang to the door, and
flinging it open, disclosed Pauline lying on the
floor where she had just fallen. With a low exclamation,
Stone picked her up and carried her
to a couch. In a moment she sat up and cried,
“What do you mean, Mr. Hardy? Do you think
I killed Aunt Lucy?”</p>
<p>“There, there, Miss Stuart, don’t ask foolish
questions,” and Hardy, deeply embarrassed,
stood at bay. It was one thing to assert his suspicions
to Fleming Stone, and quite another to
have them overheard by this beautiful and indignant
girl.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_245">[245]</div>
<p>“How dare you!” Pauline went on. “I was
at the door and I heard all you said. No, I am
not ashamed of listening, I’m glad I did. Now
I know what I have to fight against! And you,
Mr. Stone, do you think me a murderer?”</p>
<p>Pauline cringed not at all. She looked more
like an avenging goddess, as she confronted the
two men, and her blazing eyes and frowning face
challenged their replies.</p>
<p>“I do not, Miss Stuart,” said Stone, quietly,
but Pauline responded, “How do I know? If
you did, you’d say you didn’t! I have no friend,
no one to stand up for me. I shall send for Carr.
He will defend me.”</p>
<p>With a disdainful glance round, she left the
room. The two men looked at one another.</p>
<p>“Guilty,” said Hardy.</p>
<p>“Never!” said Stone, and then the two went
their different ways.</p>
<p>Hardy’s way led to the Police Headquarters,
and his report there, which included Stone’s
story of the tested glass, was heard with interest.</p>
<p>He demanded Miss Stuart’s immediate
arrest, claiming that only she could have persuaded
her aunt to swallow the poisoned
draught.</p>
<p>Inspector Brunt was not quite willing to
order arrest, but he set machinery at work which
he hoped would bring decisive results of some
sort.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_246">[246]</div>
<p>It did.</p>
<p>That same evening, Pauline went to Fleming
Stone. The two were alone. Standing before
him, in all her somewhat tragic beauty, Pauline
asked: “You don’t think me guilty, Mr. Stone?”</p>
<p>He looked deep in the great, dark eyes that
seemed to challenge his very soul, and after a
moment’s steady glance, he replied, “I know
you are not, Miss Stuart.”</p>
<p>“Can you prove it?”</p>
<p>“I hope to.”</p>
<p>“That means nothing. Are you sure you
can?”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone looked troubled. Never before
in his career had he been unable to declare
his surety of success; but with those compelling
eyes upon him he couldn’t deny a present doubt.</p>
<p>Shaking himself, as if to be freed from a
spell, he said, at last, “Miss Stuart, I am <i>not</i>
sure. I am convinced of your innocence, but the
only theory of guilt that I can conceive of is so
difficult, so almost impossible of proof, and so
lacking in plausibility, that it seems hopeless.
If determination and desperate effort can do it,
you shall be exonerated. But there are many
circumstances not in your favor. These I shall
overcome, eventually. But, to be honest, until I
can get a clue or a link of some sort to join my
purely imaginative theory to some tangible fact,
I can do little. I am working day and night in
my efforts to find this connection I seek, but it
may take a long time. Meanwhile——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_247">[247]</div>
<p>“Meanwhile, I may be arrested?” Pauline’s
voice was a mere whisper; her face was drawn
and white with fear. To Stone she did not look
like a guilty woman, but like an innocent girl,
frightened at thought of unjust suspicion and
terrorized by imagination of the unknown horrors
that might come to her.</p>
<p>“Oh, help me!” she moaned, “Mr. Stone,
can’t you help me?”</p>
<p>“Pauline!” he exclaimed, taking her hands
in his; “Pauline! Go!” he cried, tensely:
“I will save you, but until I do, keep away from
me! You unnerve me! I cannot think!”</p>
<p>“I understand!” and Pauline slowly drew
her hands from his. “I will keep away from
you.”</p>
<p>Stone let her go. He closed the door after
her, locked it, and threw himself into a chair.
What had he done? Full well he knew what he
had done. Hardy was right. He had fallen in
love with Pauline Stuart! He realized it,
quietly, honestly, as he would have realized
any incontrovertible fact. His subconsciousness
was that of a deep, still gladness; but, strangely
enough, his surface thought was that since he
had fallen in love with her, so undeniably, so irrevocably,
she <i>must</i> be innocent.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_248">[248]</div>
<p>Then on the heels of this thought, came another,
equally logical: if he deemed her innocent,
was it not only because he loved her?</p>
<p>It was only after an hour of deep thought
that Fleming Stone pulled himself together and
realized with a conquering assurance, that he
could go on with the case, and do his duty. If,
as he was confident, he could prove his vague
theory to be fact, then his love for Pauline would
help him to good work and triumphant conclusions.
If, instead, his further investigations
showed his theory to be false, then he must push
on, and if—it couldn’t be, but if—well,—he could
always drop the case. But,—and of this he was
certain,—his heart should not only be kept from
interfering with the work of his head but it
should help and encourage such desperately
clever work that success must come.</p>
<p>Pauline did not appear at dinner that night,
and on inquiry, Stone was told she had gone
over to New York for a day or two.</p>
<p>This, then, was what she had meant when she
said, “I will keep away from you.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_249">[249]</div>
<p>The next day came District Attorney Matthews
to interview Miss Stuart. Her absence
from home annoyed him and he asked for her
New York address. This no one knew, as she
had not informed any of them where she was
staying in the city, and Mr. Matthews went off
in a state of angry excitement. But the household
at Garden Steps was even more excited.</p>
<p>For this was the first sign of a definite action
against Pauline. What it meant or how far it
would go, no one could say.</p>
<p>And then, that afternoon, came a letter from
Pauline herself. It had been mailed in New
York that morning and contained the surprising
news that Pauline had sailed at noon that
day for Alexandria.</p>
<p>“Get her back!” roared Haviland, as he read
the letter. “Wireless the steamer and make her
get picked up by some incoming ship! Don’t
think of expense! She musn’t run off like that!
It’s equivalent to confession of the crime!”</p>
<p>“Hush!” demanded Fleming Stone. “How
dare you say that?”</p>
<p>“It’s true!” cried Anita. “Why else
would Pauline run away? She knew she was
on the verge of arrest and she fled to Carr Loria.
He will hide her from her pursuers.”</p>
<p>“He can,” said Haviland, thoughtfully:
“maybe it’s as well she’s gone there. Of course,
she did it.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_250">[250]</div>
<p>“Of course, she didn’t!” and Fleming
Stone’s voice trembled in its very intensity.
“And I shall prove to a lot of dunder-headed
police that she didn’t, but it will make my work
much harder if you two insist on Miss Stuart’s
guilt. Why do you want to railroad her into
conviction of a crime she never dreamed of?”</p>
<p>“Then who did it?” demanded Anita. “To
whom <i>was</i> Miss Lucy speaking when she said
those things I heard?”</p>
<p>“If you harp on that string much longer,”
said Stone, looking at her, “one might almost be
justified in thinking she said them to you.”</p>
<p>“No,” said Anita, in a low, awed voice, and
looking straight at Fleming Stone, “no, she did
not say them to me.”</p>
<p>And Stone knew she spoke the solemn truth.</p>
<p>But she had not spoken the truth when she
said she saw Pauline Stuart coming from the
boudoir of her aunt.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_251">[251]</div>
<h2 id="c19"><span class="small">XIX</span> <br/>LETTERS FROM THE FUGITIVE</h2>
<p>Pauline’s flight was deemed by many a confession
of guilt. The District Attorney declared
his intention of cabling a command to hold her
for examination at Alexandria. Or, he said,
perhaps it would be better to intercept her
course at Gibraltar or Naples.</p>
<p>The people at Garden Steps paid little attention
to these suggestions, so absorbed were they
in planning for themselves.</p>
<p>“Poor child,” said Haviland, “she ran away
in sheer panic. You don’t know Pauline as we
do, Mr. Stone; she is brave in the face of a present
or material danger. When a gardener’s cottage
burned, she was a real heroine, and saved a
tiny baby at risk of her own life. But always a
vague fear or an intangible dread throws her
into a wild, irresponsible state, and she loses her
head utterly. Now, I may as well own up that I
do think Polly committed this deed. I think that
she had stood Aunt Lucy as long as she possibly
could, and you’ve no idea what the poor
child had to put up with. I think that when Lady
Lucy threatened to send Pauline away, homeless
and penniless, this panic of fear overcame her
and she gave that poison, on an impulse,——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_252">[252]</div>
<p>“But,” interrupted Stone, “that would imply
her having the poison in readiness. She
couldn’t procure it at a moment’s notice.”</p>
<p>“That’s so,” agreed Haviland, thoughtfully;
“but, even so, it’s my belief that that’s the way
it all happened. How Pauline got the stuff I’ve
no idea, but there’s no other explanation that
fits the facts. Aunt Lucy’s aversion to drugs or
medicines could have been overcome by few
people, but Pauline could have wheedled her into
taking it by some misrepresentation of its healing
qualities or something like that.”</p>
<p>“It must have been under some such misapprehension
that she took it,” said Stone.
“For I’m convinced she took it dissolved in a
glass of water, and therefore, was conscious of
the act, though not of the nature of the dose.
But couldn’t Miss Stuart have given it innocently
by mistake, as a headache powder,
or——”</p>
<p>“Miss Carrington never had headaches,” returned
Anita, “and, any way, Pauline couldn’t
make such a mistake. It isn’t as if Miss Carrington
had a medicine cabinet like other people,
where drugs might get mixed up. No, Mr. Stone,
there was no mistake.”</p>
<p>“You think Miss Stuart administered the
poison purposely, to kill her aunt?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_253">[253]</div>
<p>It would have been a brazen soul indeed, that
could have spoken falsely under the piercing
gleam in Fleming Stone’s eyes then.</p>
<p>“I am forced to think that,” replied Anita,
quietly. “And you know I was present when
Miss Carrington denounced Pauline and told
her to leave this house the next day. And I also
heard Miss Carrington when she said, later, that
half her fortune should not go to a niece who
treated her as Pauline did——”</p>
<p>“Would she have used those words in speaking
to Miss Stuart?” asked Stone, pointedly.</p>
<p>“Surely she would. Why not?”</p>
<p>“Never mind all that, ’Nita,” said Haviland.
“Polly’s gone,—run away,—and it’s up to us to
do all we can to help her. If her flight means
she’s guilty, never mind, we must stand up for
her, and deny anything that incriminates her.
If she did poison Aunt Lucy, we don’t want her
convicted of it. She’ll go straight to Loria,
and he’ll look out for her all right. But if we
find anybody’s going to head her off at Naples,
or anywhere, we must warn her and help her to
thwart their plans.”</p>
<p>“Accessory after the fact—” began Stone.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_254">[254]</div>
<p>“Sure!” said Haviland. “You bet we’ll be
accessories after the fact, to help Polly out!
Why, Mr. Stone, if she did this thing, the best
possible plan for her was to vamoose, just as
she did do. Carr Loria can hide her in Egypt,
so nobody can find her, and after a while——”</p>
<p>“Mr. Haviland,” and Stone’s eyes gleamed,
“I am surprised at your attitude. How can you
so easily take Miss Stuart’s guilt for granted?”</p>
<p>“No other way out. Now, look here, Mr.
Stone, neither Miss Frayne nor I did this thing.
We weren’t tied to Miss Carrington’s apron
strings. We could walk off and leave her if we
chose. But Miss Stuart couldn’t. Her life was
a perfectly good hell on earth. I know all about
it, a lot more, even, than Miss Frayne does. I
don’t quite say I don’t blame Polly, but I do say
I quite understand it. She is an impulsive
creature. She’ll stand an awful lot and then fly
all to pieces at some little thing that sets her
nerves on edge. She’s clever as the Devil, and
if she procured that aconite, long ago, say, it was
in anticipation of some time when she—well,
when she just reached the limit. And it happened
to come that night. That’s all.”</p>
<p>“Wrong, Mr. Haviland, all wrong!” and
Stone’s face was positively triumphant. “I’ve
found an additional hint, in what you’ve just
said, and I’m convinced I’m on the right track!
One more question, Miss Frayne, about that
conversation you so luckily overheard.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_255">[255]</div>
<p>“Luckily?” said Anita, her great blue eyes
showing alarm in their startled gaze.</p>
<p>“Surely! Most fortunate, to my mind. Indeed,
it may well be that that carefully exact
memorandum of yours may be the means of
clearing Miss Stuart of all suspicion. Now, tell
me this. You heard only Miss Carrington’s
voice, as if speaking to somebody. Did it sound
as if she spoke always to the same person, or to
more than one at the different times?”</p>
<p>“Well, it did sound as if she spoke to different
persons, but it couldn’t have been so.
Surely, if there had been more than one I must
have heard some other words than her own.”</p>
<p>“Never mind your own surmises. You say,
it seemed as if she addressed more than one
person. Why?”</p>
<p>“Because she used a different intonation. At
times angry, at times loving. But this is only
an impression, as I now look back in memory.
I haven’t thought about this point before.”</p>
<p>“Nor need you think of it again. You have
told me all I want to know, and I assure you it
will be of no use for you to mull this over or
give it another thought.”</p>
<p>“But I don’t want you to think, Mr. Stone,”
and Anita began to cry, “that I want to suspect
Pauline——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_256">[256]</div>
<p>“I am not considering your wishes in the
matter,” said Stone, coldly. “If you do not
want to think Miss Stuart implicated in this
matter, your words and actions are unintelligible
to me, but they are equally unimportant, and
I have neither time nor thoughts to waste on
them.”</p>
<p>With this somewhat scathing speech, Stone
went away, leaving the angry Anita to be comforted
by Haviland.</p>
<p>“What did he mean?” she cried, her cheeks
pink with anger, and her blue eyes shining
through tears. “Gray, does he suspect me?”</p>
<p>“No, Anita, of course not. But he’s on a
trail. Perhaps it wasn’t Polly after all.”</p>
<p>“But it had to be! It was somebody in the
house, and it wasn’t you or me or any of the
servants.”</p>
<p>“Well, you listen to me, girl. If they quiz
you any more about that talkfest you butted into,
don’t you color the yarn to make it seem against
Polly. I won’t have it!”</p>
<p>“How cross you are! But I never did, Gray.
I never made it seem to be evidence against
Pauline.”</p>
<p>“You never did anything else!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_257">[257]</div>
<p>“Don’t you love me any more?” and the soft
lips quivered as an appealing glance was raised
to his face. Her eyes, like forget-me-nots in the
rain, were so beautiful, Haviland clasped the
lovely face in both his hands, and said as he held
it: “I won’t love you, ’Nita, if you go back on
our Polly. I’m surprised at your attitude toward
her just now, and I warn you I won’t
stand any more of it. I’m forced to think she
did this thing, but I intend to admit that to nobody
but you and Stone. If he can find the real
criminal, and it isn’t Polly, I’ll bless him forever.
But you know, as well as I do, why he is
clinging to that forlorn hope. It’s because
he’s——”</p>
<p>“Of course, I know! Because he’s in love
with her.”</p>
<p>“Yes; and it’s a remarkable thing for him to
fall head over heels in love at first sight, like
that.”</p>
<p>“Well, of course, she is handsome,” and Anita’s
grudging admission was real praise.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_258">[258]</div>
<p>“You bet she is! And old Stone fell for her
in a minute! Now there’s the old adage of ‘Love
will find a way,’ and if Fleming Stone has any
magic ability, or whatever these wizard detectives
claim, he’s going to work it to the limit to
prove Polly innocent. And I hope to goodness
he succeeds. Great Scott! I wouldn’t suspect
the girl if there was a glimpse of a gleam of any
other way to look. But, you hear me, Anita!
Don’t you say a word, true or false, that will
help on the case against Pauline Stuart! I won’t
stand for it! And don’t you say you saw her
coming from that room, when you <i>know</i> you
didn’t!”</p>
<p>The postman came just then, and brought
with him two letters addressed in Pauline’s
dashing hand.</p>
<p>“Well, what do you know about that!” exclaimed
Gray, half glad and half scared at the
sight. “One for me, and one for F. S. Here,
Anita, take Mr. Stone’s to him, while I eat up
mine.”</p>
<p>“I won’t do it! I want to see what’s in
yours, first,” and Anita stood by Gray’s side to
look over his shoulder.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_259">[259]</div>
<p>“All right, then,” and they read together:</p>
<blockquote>
<p><span class="sc">Dear Gray</span>:</p>
<p>I couldn’t help it. You see, I was so frightened at what
you all said, that I didn’t know what to do. I came over to
New York, with a vague idea of asking Mr. Price to help me.
I stayed with Ethel all night, and somehow things seemed to
look so black, I couldn’t think of anything but to go to Carr.
I went down to the steamer office to see about changing my
tickets for an earlier date, or something, and I found the
<i>Catalonia</i> sailed to-day. I’m scratching this off to go back
by the pilot. I had about two hours to get ready, so I bought
a trunk and some clothes, went to the bank and got a letter
of credit, and here I am. I don’t know yet whether I’m glad
or sorry to be here. But I know I could not stand it at
Garden Steps another minute, with you and Anita both against
me! Mr. Stone doesn’t believe I did it, but he is doubtful of
being able to prove my innocence, so I’m going to Carr, and
you can address me in his care. He’s my nearest relative,
and it’s right for me to go there. I cabled him from New York
to expect me, and to meet me at Alexandria. I’d write more,
but it’s most time for the pilot to go, and I want to send a
word to Mr. Stone. Of course, you will look after all my bills
and affairs till further notice.</p>
<p><span class="jr"><span class="sc">Pauline.</span></span></p>
</blockquote>
<p>“Good Lord!” said Gray, “Think of that
poor child going off like that, because she
thought you and I were against her!”</p>
<p>“Well, aren’t you?” asked Anita, an angry
gleam in her eyes.</p>
<p>“No! never!” shouted Gray. “If Pauline is
guilty a thousand times, I’m not against her!
I’m <i>for</i> her, Anita, for her, first, last and all
the time! Come on, now, let’s take Mr. Stone
his letter.”</p>
<p>They found Stone in the boudoir, the room
where the ghastly crime had been committed.
He spent many hours here of late; it seemed
necessary for the furthering of his theory, and
yet, whenever any one was admitted to his presence
there, he was found sitting staring at the
room and its furnishings, as if waiting for the
inanimate objects to speak.</p>
<p>“A letter? From Miss Stuart?” he said,
eagerly. “I hoped for one, by the pilot.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_260">[260]</div>
<p>He opened it, and after a glance handed it
over to Haviland.</p>
<p>It said, only:</p>
<blockquote>
<p><span class="sc">My dear Mr. Stone</span>:</p>
<p>Thank you for your belief in me, and forgive me for running
away. And, please,—oh, I beg of you, <i>please</i> drop the
case entirely. Your further investigation and discovery can
only bring sorrow and anguish to my already distracted soul.
I have no time to write more, but assume that I have put forth
any or every argument that could persuade you, and at once
cease all effort to learn who is responsible for the death of
my aunt.</p>
<p><span class="center">Sincerely yours,</span></p>
<p><span class="jr"><span class="sc">Pauline Stuart</span>.</span></p>
</blockquote>
<div class="pb" id="Page_261">[261]</div>
<h2 id="c20"><span class="small">XX</span> <br/>IN THE BOUDOIR</h2>
<p>Apparently, Fleming Stone paid little attention
to this letter from Pauline. Really, every
word engraved itself on his heart, as he read the
lines, and when he gave the paper to Gray Haviland,
it was only because he knew he would never
need to refresh his memory as to the message
Pauline had sent him.</p>
<p>Stone also read the letter she had written to
Gray, and his deep eyes clouded with pain at
some of the lines. But he returned it to Haviland
without comment, and then courteously dismissed
the pair.</p>
<p>“He’s bothered to death,” said Gray, as they
went downstairs.</p>
<p>“So’m I,” responded Anita. “But nobody
cares about me, it’s all Pauline,—whether she’s
a——”</p>
<p>“Let up on that, ’Nita!” and Gray spoke
warningly. “Don’t you call Pauline names in
my hearing!”</p>
<p>Anita, pouting, flounced away to her own
room.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_262">[262]</div>
<p>Fleming Stone remained in Miss Lucy Carrington’s
boudoir. He sat on a window-seat,
and looked out across the wide gardens and the
innumerable steps. There was not much snow
now. Merely great wind-swept stretches,
dotted with evergreen trees, and the carved
stone of the terrace railings and balustrades.</p>
<p>Long, Stone mused over Pauline’s letter.
For a time, he gave himself up to thoughts of
her in which consideration of crime had no part.
He knew he loved her, loved her with all the
strength and power of his great nature; with
all the affection and devotion of his big heart;
and with all the passion and adoration of
his deep soul. He knew she was not averse
to him. Knew almost, with his marvelous
power of knowledge, that she cared for him,
but he knew, too, that if he let his mind dwell
on such alluring thoughts or visions, he could
not work. And work, he must. Ay, work as he
had never before, with an incentive he had never
had before. And Fleming Stone’s mind was
troubled to know whether this love for Pauline
would help or hinder this work he must do.
And he resolved, with all his mighty will-power,
that it should help, that he would control this
surging emotion, so new to him, and would force
it to aid and assist his efforts, and to triumph
over all doubts or obstacles.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_263">[263]</div>
<p>Again he concentrated his whole mentality
on the room and its contents. He swore to wrest
from the silent witnesses the story of the crime.
This was not his usual method of procedure. On
the contrary, he almost invariably learned his
points from questioning people, from observing
suspects, or quizzing witnesses. But, he realized
the difference in essence between this case and
any other in which he had ever engaged. He
had no more questions to ask. He knew all any
one could or would tell him. He knew all the
facts, all the theories, all the evidence, all the
testimony. And none of it was worth a picayune
to him, except negatively. This case must be,
and should be, solved by the application of his
highest mental powers, by the most intense
thought and, doubtless, by most brilliant and
clever deduction from hints not facts, from
ideas, not visible clues. To work, then! To the
work that <i>must</i> bring success!</p>
<p>Leaving the window-seat, Stone walked
round the room, and finally drew up in front of
the mirror the easy chair in which Miss Carrington
had sat when she received the blow given by
Bates. Whether she had sat here while taking
the poison, no one knew. If Stone’s theory was
right, she had not.</p>
<p>By referring to the photographs taken of
Miss Carrington after her death, Stone was
able to reconstruct the scene correctly.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_264">[264]</div>
<p>He placed the easy chair just as it had been
when she sat in it. He assumed the position she
showed in the photographs, and gazed at himself
in the mirror, as she must necessarily have done.</p>
<p>Slowly, he went over that conversation reported
by Anita Frayne. Never, for a moment,
had he doubted the truth of that report. He was
sure Miss Carrington had really said all the
things Anita repeated, and the clear and indubitable
explanation of those remarks would mean,
he was sure, the solution of the mystery.</p>
<p>By way of interviewing his silent witnesses,
he endeavored to reconstruct, in thought, Miss
Carrington’s movements that night. Pauline
and Anita had left her, all three of them angry,
at a little after twelve. Later, Estelle had left
her,—that was about quarter to one. Then she
had on her embroidered robe and some jewels.
She was not then sitting at the dressing-table.
Nor had she then, presumably, taken the poison.
For the doctors insisted that she had swallowed
the poison very near the hour of one, but after it
rather than before, and had placed the hour of
her death at two. So, Stone reasoned, Miss
Carrington must have taken that aconite at
pretty nearly the very time Anita heard her
talking. It seemed to Stone incredible that there
could have been a person present to whom Miss
Carrington could have addressed those remarks,
and who could have given or allowed her to take
the deadly draught.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_265">[265]</div>
<p>The idea that Pauline could have been this
person was not among Fleming Stone’s catalogue
of possibilities.</p>
<p>Moreover, the fact of the one voice strongly
impressed him. Another voice, however low,
must have at some point of the conversation
risen to an audible sound to a listener with normal
hearing. Also, Anita had asserted that the
speeches of Miss Carrington did sound as if addressed
to different persons. It was not likely
there were two or more intruders or visitors
there at once, and slowly but surely Fleming
Stone decided, once for all, that Miss Carrington
was alone in that room at that time. This
meant, not exactly soliloquy, the mode of address
contradicted that, but it meant, to him, at
least, that she was addressing some inanimate
object or objects as if they were sentient.</p>
<p>His task was to discover those objects. His
first thought was, as he sat in the easy chair before
the mirror, that the lady had spoken to her
own reflection. But the speeches, of which he had
a memorandum, precluded this hypothesis. She
would not say to herself “You are so fond of
pearls,” or “You have a beautiful face.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_266">[266]</div>
<p>Abandoning that supposition, Stone methodically
searched for something that might have
been addressed.</p>
<p>Clearly,—that is, if he were on the right
track,—the words “Henri, you are the mark I
aim at!” could have been spoken to the Count’s
glove, which she held in her hand. In the same
vein, assuming that the glove, to her, represented
the Count himself, might have been said
the speech about the ten thousand dollars, and
the remark that he loved pearls.</p>
<p>Accepting these possibilities as facts, Stone
went on to discover more. His method was to
repeat to himself her very words and strive to
see or sense something to which they might have
been addressed.</p>
<p>“You have the most beautiful face I ever
saw,” he quoted softly and then, scanning the
room, went on: “I only wish mine were as
beautiful.”</p>
<p>His eyes lighted on the picture of Cleopatra,
which hung above the mirror of the dressing-table.</p>
<p>“That’s it!” he cried, with instant conviction.
“She looked at that beautiful face and then
in the mirror, at her plain features, and she involuntarily
cried out for the beauty denied her!
Poor woman, to live all her lonely, hungry life,
surfeited with wealth yet unable to buy the
fairness she craved!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_267">[267]</div>
<p>Not doubting for an instant the truth of his
conclusion, Stone checked off that speech and
passed on to the next on his list. If he could
account for them all, he would be sure Lucy Carrington
met her death alone, and therefore by
her own hand. Of course, she did not knowingly
poison herself, but if persuaded that the prepared
draught was some innocent remedy—oh,
well, that was aside the point for the moment.</p>
<p>But, quoting the phrase, “To-morrow I shall
be forever free from this curse of a plain face,—to-morrow
these jewels may all be yours,”—even
his ingenuity could suggest no meaning but
a foreknowledge of approaching death. What
else could free her from her hated lack of
beauty? What but death could transfer her
fortune of jewels to another? Of course it might
be that marriage with her would give the jewels
to Count Charlier, but the two speeches were consecutive,
and the implication was all toward
the fate that was even then almost upon her.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_268">[268]</div>
<p>The remark about ten thousand dollars
was unimportant, as she had recently willed that
sum to five different people, and the reference
to a change in her will that should cut out Pauline
might have been merely a burst of temper. At
any rate, Stone ascribed little importance to it
then. He felt that he had learned enough to
assume positively that Miss Carrington was not
talking to a human being when Anita Frayne
heard her voice. Then, he conjectured, as the
maid was free of all suspicion on the poisoning
matter, and as the two girls had left the room
at a little after twelve, the weight of evidence
was in favor of the poison being self-administered,
no matter for what reason or intent.
Granting this, there must be some trace of the
container of the aconite, before it was placed in
the glass. This must be found. If not, it proved
its removal by some one, either before or after
the poisoning actually occurred.</p>
<p>Eagerly, almost feverishly, Stone searched.
Exhaustive search had long ago been made, but
again he went over all the possible places. The
ornate waste-basket beneath the dressing-table
still held its store of dainty rubbish. This had
been ordered to remain undestroyed. Stone
knew the contents by heart, but in hope of an
overlooked clue, he again turned the contents
out on a towel. Some clippings of ribbon, a discarded
satin flower, two or three used “powder-leaves,”
a couple of hairpins and a torn letter
were the principal items of the familiar lot.
Nothing that gave the least enlightenment.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_269">[269]</div>
<p>Stone got up and wandered around. What
had that poison been in before it was put in that
glass?</p>
<p>The ever-recurring thought that some one
might have brought it to the boudoir after preparing
it elsewhere, he would not recognize. A
sort of sixth sense convinced him that if he kept
on looking he must find that clue.</p>
<p>He went into the bedroom. The beautiful
appointments, replicas of Marie Antoinette’s,
seemed to mock at his quest. “We know,” they
seemed to laugh at him, “we know all about
it, but we will never tell!”</p>
<p>Untouched since Estelle’s deft hand had
turned back its silken coverlets, the bed seemed
waiting for some fair occupant. With a sigh at
the pathos of it, Stone suppressed an involuntary
thought of the incongruity of that gilded,
lace-draped nest, and its pitifully unbeautiful
owner. There was a profusion of embroidered
pillows, and across the satin puff lay a fairy-like
night-robe of gossamer texture, and coquettish
ribbons. A peignoir of pink crêpe lay
beside it, and on the floor a pair of brocade
<i>mules</i> waited in vain for feet that would never
again slip into their furred linings.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_270">[270]</div>
<p>There was nothing helpful here, and with a
sigh Stone went on to the bath-room. Fit for a
princess, the shining white and gleaming silver
showed careful readiness. Embroidered towels,
delicate soaps and perfumes were in place—all
showed preparation, not use.</p>
<p>“If I were searching traces of Estelle, now,”
groaned Stone, despairingly, to himself, “I
could find thousands. But Miss Carrington
didn’t come in here at all. But, whoever rinsed
that glass did!” The thought caused Stone to
start with eagerness. It was the fact of the glass
being out of line with the other appointments of
the wash-stand that had first attracted his attention
to it. After the test, the glass had been returned
to its place, now in strict position between
a silver cup and a flask of violet water.</p>
<p>“Spoon in it,” mused Stone. “Shows carelessness
on the part of whoever put it there.
Don’t believe a spoon was in a glass, generally,
in this celestial bath-room. If——”</p>
<p>His ruminations were cut short by a shock of
surprise. Under the wash-stand was a small
waste-basket. Had this been overlooked by the
searchers? Not surprising, for thorough search
had not been made in bedroom or bath-room, as
in the room where death had taken place.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_271">[271]</div>
<p>Stone mechanically looked over the contents
of the little basket. There was only a scant
handful of papers. But carefully spreading a
towel on the floor he turned the basket upside
down. Tremblingly he fingered the papers. The
first was the wrapper that had contained a cake
of French soap. At a glance, Stone saw the corresponding
soap in its silver dish. Estelle had
doubtless placed it there, casting away its paper.</p>
<p>But among the scraps was another paper—two
more. They were,—they surely <i>were</i> in
creases like the folds of a powder paper!</p>
<p>With lightest touch, Stone unfolded them.
There was one, about four inches square, that
had been folded as if to contain a powder. This
was white, and of a texture like writing paper.
The other was of a paraffin paper, exactly the
same size and shape, and in similar creases.
Also there was a bunchy ball of tin-foil, that,
when smoothed out, proved to be of identical
shape and size with the other two.</p>
<p>There was no room for doubt. These were
unquestionably the wrappers of the aconitine!
Stone detected on the inside of the paraffin paper
traces of the powder itself, and knew that a
test would prove his discovery a true find.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_272">[272]</div>
<p>Now, then, where did he stand? To his own
mind, what he had found proved that Miss Carrington
had herself gone to her bath-room,
opened the powder, thrown the papers carelessly
in the basket, and then, mixing the stuff with
water, had taken it then and there and rinsed
the glass and set it back on the shelf. It was all
natural and plausible.</p>
<p>But, he well knew, others would say that, remembering
her detestation of medicaments, Miss
Lucy Carrington never did such a thing. Also,
they would say, some one else, some one of whom
Miss Lucy felt no fear, had mixed the draught,
and had administered it, by means of some yet
undiscovered but plausible misrepresentation.</p>
<p>And only too well he knew whose name would
be associated with the deed!</p>
<p>Heavy of heart, he returned to the boudoir
and sat in the easy chair, before the mirror.</p>
<p>New thoughts came surging. It was sure,
now, that Miss Carrington took the aconitine in
a glass of water, in her own apartments,—one of
them,—and took it, if not knowingly or willingly,
at least without any great objection or disturbance.
Clinging to his theory that she was
alone, Stone visualized her taking the draught by
herself. Assume for the moment, an intended
headache cure,—but no! If she took the aconitine
alone and voluntarily, she knew it was poison,
for she said “To-morrow I shall be freed
forever from this homely face.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_273">[273]</div>
<p>Did it all come back, then, to suicide? No, not
with that glad face, that happy smile, that joyful
look of anticipation. A suffering invalid, longing
for death, might thus welcome a happy release,
but not life-loving Lucy Carrington.</p>
<p>It was too bewildering, too inexplicable.
Again and again Stone scanned the powder
papers. They told nothing more than that they
were the powder papers. That was positive, but
what did it prove? To whom did it point?</p>
<p>Frowning, Stone studied his own face in the
mirror before him. Desperately, he repeated
again all the sentences on Anita’s list.</p>
<p>At one of them he paused, even in the act of
repetition.</p>
<p>He stared blankly into his own mirrored eyes,
a dawning light beginning to flame back at him.
Then, a little wildly, he glanced around,—up,
down, and back to his almost frenzied, reflected
face.</p>
<p>“Oh!” he muttered, through his clinched
teeth, for Stone was not a man given to strong
expletives, “it is! I’ve got it at last! The
powder, the pearls,—the snake! My Heavens!
the <i>snake</i>! Oh, Pauline, my love, my love—but
who? who? Have I discovered this thing only to
lead back to her? I <i>won’t</i> have it so! I am on
the right track at last, and I’ll follow it to the
end—the end, but it shall <i>not</i> lead, I <i>know</i> it will
not—to my heart’s idol, my beautiful Pauline!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_274">[274]</div>
<h2 id="c21"><span class="small">XXI</span> <br/>FLEMING STONE’S THEORY</h2>
<p>Alone in the library, Fleming Stone and
Detective Hardy were in counsel.</p>
<p>“I’m going to show you this thing as I see
it, Mr. Hardy,” said Stone. “I frankly admit
it’s all theory, I haven’t a particle of human testimony
to back it, but it seems to me the <i>only</i>
solution that will fit all points of the mystery.
And I shall ask you to consider it confidential
for the present, until I can corroborate it by unmistakable
proofs.”</p>
<p>Hardy nodded assent, his eyes fixed on the
speaker in a sort of fascination.</p>
<p>This young detective had not been at all idle
of late, but his work had amounted to nothing
definite, and though he was himself convinced
that Pauline Stuart was responsible for her
aunt’s death, he seldom exploited that view before
Stone, having learned that it was an unwelcome
subject.</p>
<p>“Here’s the theory in a very small nutshell,”
said Stone, “but remember, you’re not to mention
it to any one until I give you permission.
Miss Lucy Carrington took that powder, thinking
it a drug that would make her beautiful.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_275">[275]</div>
<p>“A charm? a philter?” Hardy’s eyes seemed
to bulge in his excitement.</p>
<p>“I’m not sure whether it was a fake magic
affair, say, from a clairvoyant or fortune-teller,
or whether it was a plain swindle from a beauty
doctor or something of that sort. You know
such people play on the credulity of rich patrons
and get enormous sums and a promise of secrecy
for a so-called beauty producer.”</p>
<p>“But why would the beauty doctor or the
clairvoyant person give a patient poison?”</p>
<p>“They didn’t. They gave a harmless powder,
and some evil-minded person added the aconite,
secretly, knowing of the beauty scheme.”</p>
<p>“Who did it?”</p>
<p>“That’s yet to be discovered, but it will be
easier if we can trace the one who sold her the
nostrum. Now, listen while I reconstruct the
scene. Miss Carrington, having dismissed her
maid, goes to her bath-room, and takes the powder
dissolved in water. These powder papers,
which I found in her bath-room waste-basket,
carry out that idea.”</p>
<p>Hardy stared at the papers, but did not interrupt
the speaker.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_276">[276]</div>
<p>“Then, joyfully waiting the effect of the
charm, she sits in front of the mirror to watch
her features become beautiful. This is why she
said to her own reflection, ‘To-morrow I shall
be freed forever from this homely face!’ She
gazed at the picture of Cleopatra above her
dressing-table, and said ‘Yours is the most
beautiful face I have ever seen. I wish mine
were as beautiful.’ The remarks concerning
Count Charlier were addressed to the glove
which she held in her hand, a sentimental part
of the whole performance.”</p>
<p>“Mighty interesting, Mr. Stone, but pretty
fantastic, so far.”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone gave his slow, grave smile,
that always betokened a surety of his own statements.
“Wait a bit, Hardy, before you condemn
this notion. I haven’t finished yet. Now
Cleopatra figures pretty strongly in this scheme.
Look at these photographs taken after death.
They show the lady exactly as she looked when
she sat there. See, she is gazing at the picture
of Cleopatra, too intently to be merely a casual
glance. And, what do you think of this? She
gazed at Cleopatra, and, holding the Count’s
glove, her mind and heart full of the Count, who
would adore her when she achieved this looked-for
beauty, she said, ‘You are the Mark I aim
at!’ meaning, as Cleopatra had her Mark Antony,
she, Lucy Carrington, aimed at the Mark
of her choice,—the Count.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_277">[277]</div>
<p>“If that’s true, Mr. Stone, you are the wizard
of the ages! How did you dope it out?
What——”</p>
<p>“Now, wait a minute. This isn’t the pipe
dream you think it. But listen while I tell the
rest in my own way.”</p>
<p>“Listen! I should think I would! Go on.”</p>
<p>“You know, these fakers give out these
charms with all sorts of fool directions to impress
the duped customer. As I say, I’m not
sure yet whether it was a professional of the
clairvoyant type, or a regular beauty doctor.
But in either case, I’ve no doubt that Miss Carrington
paid him enough to compensate for
giving up his practice and leaving for parts unknown.
For after the charm failed to work, of
course she would expose the fraud.”</p>
<p>“But the poison——”</p>
<p>“Never mind that for the moment, Mr.
Hardy. Surely, if we can discover for certain
how and why the dose was taken, it will go far
to help us trace the criminal who added the
deadly element to the powder. Now, continuing
the Cleopatra idea, I am sure that the clever
clairvoyante,—we’ll assume that’s what she
was,——”</p>
<p>“She?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_278">[278]</div>
<p>“Merely to designate this faker person.
Somehow I seem to see her as one of those crystal-gazing,
frowsy-headed kimonoed females,
who prey on the credulity of rich and foolish
women,—well, let’s call her that for the present,
this clever clairvoyante somehow conceived
the idea of offering to make Miss Carrington as
beautiful as Cleopatra. Perhaps she had been
here to see Miss Carrington on the subject, and
that beautiful picture of Cleopatra put it into
her head. But, assuming something of this sort,
assume further that she directed Miss Carrington
to robe herself, in a general way, like the
queen in the picture. Note the pearls!
Wouldn’t this explain Miss Carrington’s getting
her pearls from the bank for this occasion?
And wouldn’t it explain her speech, ‘You love
pearls,’ as being addressed to Cleopatra, to
whom she was talking!”</p>
<p>“Go on, Mr. Stone! <i>Go</i> on!”</p>
<p>“I will go on! Wouldn’t that explain, as
nothing else on this green earth can, the purchase
of a paper snake by the woman who feared and
abhorred the reptiles! Supposing the fool
clairvoyante had told her that to become like Cleopatra
she must have a semblance of a snake at
her throat, as Cleopatra had the asp!”</p>
<p>“Good Heavens!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_279">[279]</div>
<p>“I tell you, Mr. Hardy, nothing else would
account for that snake! And any one of these
things might seem the result of a lunatic imagination
by itself, but taken all together, the theory
holds water! Why think of the Oriental scarf,
the embroidered robe, the mass of jewels in addition
to the significant pearls, and the scarabs!
All point to the type of Cleopatra. If there had
been a picture on the wall, say, of Helen of Troy,
and Miss Carrington had been rigged up in a
Greek costume, with a fillet in her hair, and sandals
on her feet,—or if the picture had shown
the Goddess of Liberty, and we had found Miss
Carrington draped in an American flag, could
any one have denied the significance? There
can be no doubt,—no doubt in this world, Hardy,
that the costume, the jewels and the snake all
point to a connection with the picture of Cleopatra,
and if so, what other connection is possible
than the one I’ve blocked out? Answer me
that! And, finally, the speech to the Count,
whose glove she fondled, ‘You are the Mark I
aim at.’ A pleasantry of wording inevitably
suggested by the thought of the man Cleopatra
charmed and the man Miss Carrington desired
to charm. And a play on words too, not at all
unnatural to her, for I’m told she was both
witty and clever in conversation.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_280">[280]</div>
<p>“Mr. Stone, I am carried away by your arguments.
I can’t deny their plausibility, but I
am bewildered. How did you fathom this remarkable
plan?”</p>
<p>“Simply because there is no other plan that
will fit the facts. I believe Miss Carrington did
say all those things Miss Frayne relates. I believe
she was alone in the room when she said
them. Therefore, they must have had some
meaning, and the meanings I have just ascribed
to them must be the true ones.”</p>
<p>“They must be——”</p>
<p>“And I will further satisfy you that they
are. Here is a memorandum I found in Miss
Carrington’s desk. It is, as you see, a list of
items. Read it.”</p>
<p>Hardy’s eyes stared more widely than ever
as he read:</p>
<blockquote>
<br/>Green and gold boudoir robe.
<br/>Jewels, especially pearls.
<br/>Scarabs.
<br/>Scarf.
<br/>Snake.
<br/>Something belonging to H.
</blockquote>
<p>“Now, that,” and Fleming Stone spoke in
low, even tones, without a hint of boasting or
pride in his achievement, “is a list in Miss Carrington’s
own writing, and is undeniably a list of
things to be worn on the occasion which she
hoped would mean a delightful change to the
beauty she so desired to be, but which, instead,
was a change to the cold stillness of death. I
found that, after reaching my own conclusions
about the Cleopatra business. If I had found
it before, I would have known it must refer
to her costume, but I couldn’t have gleaned from
it the conclusions I had already come to. Now,
Hardy, are you convinced?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_281">[281]</div>
<p>“I am, Mr. Stone. And I am also puzzled.
From all this knowledge, we start fresh, as it
were, and we——”</p>
<p>“Wait a minute, Hardy. Let’s go slowly.
Now, here are two ways to look at this thing.
I told you about the clairvoyante first, because
that first came to my mind as the inevitable explanation.
But, suppose, instead of a professional
clairvoyante or beauty doctor, some
friend or—” Stone set his teeth, but went on
steadily, “or some one in the household, planned
all this scheme, and pretended to get a powder
that would accomplish this transformation, gave
it to the unsuspecting lady to take by herself, and
in reality this powder was the aconite.”</p>
<p>Hardy jumped. “Then Miss Stuart——”
he began.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_282">[282]</div>
<p>“Ah,” and Stone’s face was white and his
voice like cutting steel, “<i>Why</i> Miss Stuart?
Why not Miss Frayne, who listened at the door?
Why not Estelle, who knew all her mistress’
secrets? Why not Haviland, who is openly enjoying
his present responsible position as man
of affairs? Why not Count Charlier, whose
crafty cunning shows on his face? Of course,
<i>also</i>, why not Miss Stuart, but why <i>necessarily</i>
Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>“Well, she has run away, you know——”</p>
<p>“So she has, because of unjust and unfounded
suspicions! When clues point directly
to her, I shall admit them, but when they may
equally well point to half a dozen others, I shall
patiently investigate them and learn the truth.
Now, I ask of you, Hardy, as man to man, <i>not</i> to
favor Miss Stuart unduly, but to give her a fair
show, and remember her lonely position and her
timid nature.”</p>
<p>Hardy looked furtively at Fleming Stone,
whose eyes were downcast and fastened on some
papers he was holding.</p>
<p>“Count on me, Mr. Stone. I am at your
orders. I subscribe to your theories, and I will
do exactly what you tell me, and no more or
less.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_283">[283]</div>
<p>“Good, Hardy, and thank you. Now, look at
these papers. They are the ones that contained
the fatal powder. See, this paraffin one was inside;
then one of tin-foil, then one of rather
heavy writing-paper.”</p>
<p>“That doesn’t look altogether like a clairvoyante’s
work.”</p>
<p>“Why not? It does to me. They are mighty
careful to do up their goods in an elaborate
manner to impress their customers. But, mind
you, I don’t for a moment suspect this clairvoyante
individual of intended murder. Either
the aconite was added to the parcel from the
clairvoyante, or the whole affair was concocted
by the murderer and under pretense of its having
come from the clairvoyante.”</p>
<p>“H’m,” Hardy was clearly beyond his
depth.</p>
<p>“So,” went on Stone, “we must deduce what
we can from these papers. What do you see
peculiar about them?”</p>
<p>“Just plain little old nothing,” Hardy declared
after a good scrutiny. “I see, as you
remarked, three papers, folded similarly, and of
nearly the same size. What do you see?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_284">[284]</div>
<p>“Not much more,” confessed Stone, gazing
discontentedly at the papers. “And yet, there
must be something to notice. Here’s one point.
These papers, if tampered with, I mean if anything
was added to their contents, were manipulated
very carefully. You know how difficult
it is to unfold and refold a powder-paper without
making it look messy. These, I would be
willing to assert, have never been refolded, or,
as I say, if they were, it was done very carefully.”</p>
<p>“That isn’t much of a clue,” and Hardy
smiled.</p>
<p>“It may be,” returned Stone. “It at least
indicates a possible elimination of the clairvoyante
and an indication of the murderer preparing
the powder alone. At any rate, Hardy,
I’ve told you all this in order to ask your help.
Will you go and see what you can round up in
the way of the clairvoyante of our dreams? Go
to all you can find in New York City. That is
the prominent ones. Get a line on beauty doctors,
and generally look up this sort of thing.
And keep it all under your hat.”</p>
<p>“All right, Mr. Stone,” and Hardy was off
at once.</p>
<p>Fleming Stone put away the papers, and sat
for more than an hour in a brown study. It
must be admitted that a photograph of Pauline
Stuart, which stood on a near-by table, held
his eyes much of the time. And his gaze, as it
rested on the lovely face, was now tender and
now sad.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_285">[285]</div>
<p>At last he rang for a servant. To the footman
who replied, he made a request that a chamber-maid
be sent to him.</p>
<p>The girl came, wondering.</p>
<p>“Mary?” said Fleming Stone, inquiringly.</p>
<p>“Jane, sir,” returned the maid, quietly.</p>
<p>“Good,” said Stone. “You have intelligence,
Jane, as shown by your calm rejoinder.
Now, I want you to go to the various bedrooms
or dressing-rooms of all the members of the
family and of all the servants, and bring me
all the manicure scissors you can find. I assume
that some of the servants might possibly have
them?”</p>
<p>“Yes, sir, some of them.”</p>
<p>“Very well. Get all you can possibly find,
and be very, <i>very</i> careful to remember which
ones are whose. Understand?”</p>
<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
<p>“Then go. If anybody questions you, say
Mr. Stone ordered it.”</p>
<p>Jane returned with many pairs of the kind
of scissors asked for by the Detective. Absorbedly,
Stone took them from her, and one by
one he used them to snip at a sheet of paper
from the library desk.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_286">[286]</div>
<p>At each test, he asked Jane whose the
scissors were, and sometimes he wrote the name
beside the cut and sometimes not. One pair in
especial seemed to interest him. “Whose are
these?” he asked.</p>
<p>“Those, sir, I took from Miss Carrington’s
dressing-table.” Jane gave a slight shudder as
if at the recollection of the tragedy of that table.</p>
<p>“But these are of a different patterned
handle from the rest of that dressing-table’s
silver.”</p>
<p>“I don’t know, sir, as to that. They were
there and I brought them.”</p>
<p>“Very well, Jane. Take them all back to
their places. Mind now, don’t mix them.”</p>
<p>“No, sir. Thank you, sir.”</p>
<p>A strange excitement seemed to seize upon
Fleming Stone. Abruptly he left the room, and,
flinging on his overcoat in the hall, he snatched
his hat and went away, almost on a run. His
steps took him to the garage and in a few moments
he was in a swift little runabout being
driven to the sanatorium where Estelle was still
staying.</p>
<p>After a call there, he hurried to Police Headquarters.
Thence, after a rather long call, to a
telegraph office, to one or two shops and then
back to Garden Steps.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_287">[287]</div>
<p>Here he put several servants at work for
him, packing his effects and such matters, then
summoning Gray Haviland to the library, he
said; “I’m sailing for Egypt this afternoon.
May I ask you to make no further investigations
till my return?”</p>
<p>“Egypt!” gasped Gray. “Good Heavens,
man! what for?”</p>
<p>“In the interest of my work for you,” returned
Stone, gravely.</p>
<p>“Rubbish! You’re chasing Pauline! We’ll
never see either of you again!”</p>
<p>Fleming Stone smiled. “I do love her, Haviland,
I make no denial of that fact. And I do
hate to have her alone in a strange land. So, if
I can be of any help to her, an ocean or two to
cross shall not keep me from her.”</p>
<p>“And your detective work?”</p>
<p>“Will not suffer by my absence. I’ve been to
the Police and to the District Attorney and they
approve my plans as I’ve outlined them so far.
The rest must wait my return.”</p>
<p>“Ah, and when will you be back?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know exactly, but I will keep you
informed of my whereabouts. Say good-by to
Miss Frayne for me, and please excuse me now,
as I’ve heaps to do. By the way, where is that
record of Miss Carrington’s song that I have
heard of? Play it for me, will you?”</p>
<p>“Thought you were in such a hurry!”
laughed Haviland, but granted the request.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_288">[288]</div>
<p>“Wonderful!” commented the Detective, as
he heard it on the phonograph. “It is a perfectly-made
record. If you don’t mind, I’ll take
possession of it.”</p>
<p>“All right,” said Gray, carelessly, and in
another half hour Fleming Stone was on his
way to the pier where the <i>Macedonia</i> was making
ready to sail.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_289">[289]</div>
<h2 id="c22"><span class="small">XXII</span> <br/>PAULINE IN CAIRO</h2>
<p>On the first of March, about mid-afternoon,
the <i>Catalonia</i> steamed into the harbor of Alexandria.
Pauline, at the rail, watched the clearing
outlines of mosques and minarets, as the
beautiful city became visible. It was a glistening,
dazzling strip, between the deep blue of the
sea and the azure of the sky, and, breathless
with delight, she gazed at the shining sunlit
picture.</p>
<p>Then the Arab pilot came aboard, and soon
Pauline found herself in a shore-boat, swiftly
making for the quay. She knew Loria would
meet her at Alexandria, she had had a telegram
at Naples to that effect, and she thrilled with
pleasure at thought of seeing wonderful Egypt
with him. Landing, she was bewildered by the
crowd of strange-looking people, natives, tourists,
officials and porters, all shouting, running
and getting in each other’s way. Luggage was
everywhere, and the game seemed to be to present
any piece of it to anybody except the owner.
Pauline fell to laughing at the antics of a black
man robed in white and a brown man robed in
yellow fighting for possession of a small portmanteau,
while its timid and bewildered owner
desperately hung on to it herself.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_290">[290]</div>
<p>Three or four Arabs gathered round Pauline
herself, each asserting his claim to all the
virtues of a perfect dragoman. In more or less
intelligible English, each insisted he had been
sent to her personally by Effendi This or That,
of marvelous wealth and power. Greatly interested,
she listened to their arguments, until,
encouraged, they became so insistent that she
was frightened. Seeing this, they waxed
threatening, even belligerent, in their determination
to be engaged, and just as one laid his
brown, long fingers on her arm, and she drew
back in a panic of fear, she saw Carr Loria’s
smiling face coming to her through the crowd.</p>
<p>With a wave of his hand and a few short
commands, he sent the bothersome Arabs flying,
and greeted Pauline with affectionate enthusiasm.</p>
<p>“Polly, dear! but I’m glad to see you! Have
you had a good trip? But such questions must
wait a bit. Where are your checks? Do you see
your boxes?”</p>
<p>“There’s only one, and some hand things.
Here is——”</p>
<p>“All right,” and Loria took the little sheaf
of papers she produced from her handbag.
“Ahri, look after these.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_291">[291]</div>
<p>A tall Arab glided to Loria’s side, and took
the checks. “Ahri is my dragoman and body-servant
and general factotum,” said Loria, by
way of introduction. “This lady, Ahri, is my
cousin, Miss Stuart. Her word is law.”</p>
<p>“Yes, Mr. Loria. Miss Stoort is queen of
all.”</p>
<p>The man made a salaam of obeisance and
turned away to look after the luggage.</p>
<p>“He’s a wonder, that Ahri,” said Carrington
Loria, looking after the retreating Arab.
“But be very haughty with him, Polly. He presumes
upon the least encouragement. Treat
him like the dust under your feet, and he’ll adore
you.”</p>
<p>“That’s easy enough,” and Pauline smiled.
“I’m scared to death of these brown and black
men. But your servant is so grand of costume.”</p>
<p>“Yes, he’s a very high-class affair. Handsome
chap and fond of dress. But he’s invaluable
to me. Speaks almost perfect English,
and knows everything there is to know,—and
then some. Knows, too, everybody who has
ever been in Cairo or ever thought of
coming here. And he possesses the proud
distinction of being the only dragoman here-abouts
who hasn’t a letter of recommendation
from Hichens. You haven’t that, have you,
Ahri?” for the Arab had just reappeared.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_292">[292]</div>
<p>A marvelous set of white teeth gleamed in
the sunlight, as the response came quickly: “I
had one, Mr. Loria, but I sold it. They are of
use to others; Ahri needs none.” His self-conceit
was superb, and he spoke with the air
of a prince. But warned by Loria, Pauline gave
him no answering smile, rather a patronizing
nod, and Ahri’s respect for the newcomer went
up several points.</p>
<p>“Come along, girlie,” commanded Carrington
and he took Pauline’s arm as he hurried her
to the boat-train.</p>
<p>Watchful Ahri showed them to the compartment
he had secured for them, and soon
they were on their way to Cairo.</p>
<p>“Now, tell me everything,” said Carr Loria,
as they sat alone. “This is a three-hour trip
and I want to know the whole story. Just think,
Pauline, I’ve had only a few letters, and they
were—well,—they were almost contradictory in
some ways. So tell me all, from the beginning.”</p>
<p>Pauline did, and by the time they reached
Cairo, Loria knew as much as she of the death of
their aunt and the subsequent search for the
murderer.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_293">[293]</div>
<p>“Wasn’t it strange,” he mused, “that that
Bates person should go in to kill her, the very
night somebody else had the same intention?”</p>
<p>“Well, but, Carr, Bates didn’t start out to
kill her, you know; he went to steal the jewels,
and he knew they were all in the house that
night, because Estelle told him so. Now, of
course, whoever gave her the poison, must have
known it too——”</p>
<p>“Oh, I don’t know. Why didn’t somebody
want to put her out of the way to get a bequest?
Not necessarily the Count gentleman, but maybe
one of the servants. Maybe that Estelle?
Didn’t she receive a legacy in Aunt Lucy’s
will?”</p>
<p>“Yes, but nobody has thought of suspecting
her.”</p>
<p>“Don’t see why not. I thought of her first
clip. I don’t think that Stone paragon amounts
to much. Hey, what are you blushing about?
Sits the wind in that quarter?”</p>
<p>“Don’t tease me, Carr. I <i>do</i> like him better
than any man I ever saw, but——”</p>
<p>“And so you ran away and left him! Out
with it, Polly. Tell your old Uncle Dudley the
story of your life!”</p>
<p>“There’s nothing to tell, Carr, about Mr.
Stone. But I came to you, because some
people suspect me,—<i>ME</i>—of—of killing Aunt
Lucy——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_294">[294]</div>
<p>“Pauline! They don’t! Who suspects you?”</p>
<p>“All the police people, and Gray and Anita
Frayne,——”</p>
<p>“They do! You poor little girl! I’m glad
you came to me. I’ll take care of you. But,
Polly, whom do <i>you</i> suspect? Honest, now, who
is in your mind?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know, Carr. I can’t seem to think.
But when they fastened it on me, I was so frightened,
I just flew. Why, just think, every one at
Garden Steps was suspicious of me! I could
see it even in the servants’ eyes. I couldn’t
stand it, and I was afraid——”</p>
<p>“Yes, dear, go on,——”</p>
<p>“Well, I was afraid Mr. Stone would think
so, and I couldn’t bear that, so I just ran off on
impulse. I regretted it lots of times on the trip
over,—and then at other times I was glad I
came. Are you glad?”</p>
<p>“Sure, Polly. I wanted you to stick to your
plan of coming over, you know. Yes, I’m glad
you’re here. Now, we’ll soon be in Cairo, and
you’ll love it,—all the strange sights and experiences.
You’ll live at Shepheard’s for the
present. I’ve engaged a chaperon for you.”</p>
<p>“How thoughtful you are, Carr.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_295">[295]</div>
<p>“Oh, of course, a beautiful young woman
can’t live alone in Cairo, and also of course,
you couldn’t live with me. So, Mrs. MacDonald
will look after you, but she won’t in any way
bother you. Whenever you need a duenna, she’ll
be right at your elbow, and when you don’t want
her about, she is self-effacing. You’ll like her,
too, she’s not half-bad as a companion.”</p>
<p>At Cairo, Ahri handed them from the train.
Again Polly was impressed with the Arab’s dignified
bearing and rich costume. His long galabeah,
shaped like a well-fitting bathrobe, was of
white corded silk, exquisitely embroidered.
Collarless, it gave glimpses of other silken vestments,
and over it he wore a correct English
topcoat, short and velvet-trimmed. From his
tarbush to his English shoes and silk hose, he
was perfectly garbed and groomed, while the
scarab ring on his little finger was the only bit
of jewelry visible.</p>
<p>“That’s nothing,” laughed Loria, following
her glance. “Wait till you see him in all the
glory of his burnoose and other contraptions.
Here, Ahri, take this duffel, too. And, now,
Polly-pops, you’ll see Cairo.”</p>
<p>The ride to the hotel was like a moving
picture in color. The street crowds were rushing
by, a flare of bright-hued raiment and dark-skinned
faces. Everywhere, baubles were for
sale. Street vendors carried them on their
heads, in their arms, or thrust them forth with
eager hands.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_296">[296]</div>
<p>Post-cards, jewelry, scarfs, and fans. Fly-whisks
with dangling beads. Embroideries,
carved ivories, brasses, sweetmeats, fruits and
newspapers, all were successively and collectively
offered for immediate, almost compulsory
sale.</p>
<p>“And I want to buy every one!” declared
Pauline, entranced at the sight of the catch-penny
toys.</p>
<p>“All in good time, honey. To-morrow, Ahri
shall take you to the bazaars, with or without
Mrs. MacDonald, as you choose, and you can get
a bushel of foolishness if you want to. Everybody
has to cure that first mad desire to buy
rubbish, by yielding to it. You soon get
enough.”</p>
<p>“Then I may go alone with Ahri to the
shops?”</p>
<p>“Yes, anywhere, by daylight, except to social
affairs. There, or to any in-door entertainment,
you must take her. But she’ll know all
these things. Abide always by her decision.”</p>
<p>“But won’t you be with me, Carr? You
speak as if I will be much without you.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_297">[297]</div>
<p>“I’m awfully busy, Pauline; I’ll tell you all
about it this evening. Then you’ll understand.
Here we are at Shepheard’s. Did you ever see
such a horde of freaks?”</p>
<p>It was just about dusk. The last rays of the
Egyptian sunset were lingering, as if for Pauline
to get one glimpse of the picture by their
rainbow lights. Many were at tea on the
broad Terrace; the scarlet-coated band crashed
their brasses; and Pauline entered the hotel,
her whole being responding to the strange thrill
that Cairo gives even to the most phlegmatic
visitor or jaded tourist.</p>
<p>Later, at dinner, she met Mrs. MacDonald, a
correct, tactful and diplomatic widow, who
looked forward with pleasure to the chaperonage
of the beautiful girl to whom she was introduced.</p>
<p>At Loria’s advice, Pauline had put on evening
dress; and she made a striking picture, in
black tulle, devoid of all jewelry or ornament
save a breast-knot of purple orchids her cousin
had sent to her rooms.</p>
<p>At dinner, conversation was general, and the
trio was made a quartet by the addition of an
English friend of Loria’s whom he ran across
in the hotel lobby. Later, after they had had
their coffee in the great hall, Mrs. MacDonald
and the Englishman strolled away and the cousins
were left alone.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_298">[298]</div>
<p>“How beautiful you have grown, Pauline,”
Carr said, his eyes resting on her piquant face,
crowned with its mass of soft, dark hair.</p>
<p>“Speak for yourself, John,” she returned
smiling up into the handsome, sunburned face of
the man who scrutinized her. “You have acquired
not only a becoming tan, but a new air
of distinction.”</p>
<p>“Glad you think so, girlie. Thanks a whole
lot. How do you like the MacDonald?”</p>
<p>“Very much so far. She won’t try to boss
me, will she?”</p>
<p>“Not unless you make it necessary; but you
must remember that English etiquette obtains
in Cairo, and you mustn’t try to be unconventional,
except as Mrs. MacDonald approves.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I won’t disgrace you, Carr, I’ve common
sense, I hope. Now tell me about yourself.”</p>
<p>“I’m deep in a new project, Polly, a wonderful
one. It’s an enormous undertaking, but I
shall put it through all right.”</p>
<p>“What is it? Excavation?”</p>
<p>“In a way. But here’s the story. Mind,
now, it’s a dead secret. Don’t mention it to
Mrs. Mac. I trust you with it, but it must go
no further. Well, in a word, I’ve come into possession
of an old papyrus, that tells of a
treasure——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_299">[299]</div>
<p>“Oh, Carr, are you a treasure-seeker?”</p>
<p>“Now, wait till I tell you. This papyrus is
authentic, and it’s nothing more nor less than
an account of a great hoard of jewels and gold
sunk, purposely, by an old Egyptian king to
save them from seizure. You wouldn’t understand
all the reasons that prove this is a true
bill, but it is, and so you must take my word for
it. All right. The old duffer saw fit to sink this
stuff in the Nile, at a certain spot, designated
in this papyrus thing, and all I’ve got to do is to
dig her up, and there you are!”</p>
<p>Carr Loria’s face lighted up with the enthusiasm
of the true archæologist, and Pauline
caught the spirit, too, as she exclaimed, “How
splendid! How do you get down to it,—if it’s
under the Nile?”</p>
<p>“It’s a big scheme, Polly!” and Loria’s eyes
sparkled. “I’ve got to have a coffer-dam, an
enormous one,—and, oh, and a whole lot of paraphernalia,
and it will cost like fury, but the end
justifies the expense,—and then, think of the
glory of it!”</p>
<p>“Have you got a right to do all this? Can
anybody dig wherever he likes in Egypt?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_300">[300]</div>
<p>“No, you little goose! But I’ve managed all
that part. I won’t tell even you about it, but
I’ve—well, I’ve fixed it up. Now, listen here,
Pollypops, you’re to tell just simply <i>nobody</i> a
word of all this,—not one, littlest, leastest mite
of a word! See?”</p>
<p>“All right, Carr, of course I won’t tell, if you
say not to. But will you be away from us?
Out of Cairo?”</p>
<p>“Off and on. I’ll be back and forth, you
know. This place is up the Nile a bit, and, of
course, I have to be there much of the time. But
you’ll be all right. I know heaps of people, jolly
sort, too, and Mrs. Mac will take you round, and
you’ll have the time of your sweet young life!”</p>
<p>“I’m sure I shall. But, Carr, have you forgotten
all about America, and Aunt Lucy and—and
Fleming Stone?”</p>
<p>“No, Pauline, I haven’t forgotten those
things. But, I own up, aside from the awful circumstances,
I’m not terribly wrought up over
Aunt Lucy’s death. Poor old thing, she wasn’t
so awfully happy, you know, and Lord knows,
she didn’t make anybody else happy. Then, too,
you must realize that as I wasn’t there, through
the dreadful time, as you were, I can’t feel the
same thrill and horror of it. In fact, I try to
forget it all I can, as I can’t do anybody
any good by mulling over it. So, if you want
to please me, old girl, you’ll refer to it as little
as you can.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_301">[301]</div>
<p>“But don’t you care who killed her? Don’t
you want to find out the murderer and bring him
to justice?”</p>
<p>“I want that done, Polly, but <i>I</i> don’t want
to do it. That’s why I put it all in Haviland’s
hands; that’s why I didn’t want to go to America,
unless, as I told you at first, unless <i>you</i>
needed me. I can’t pay proper attention to my
work here if I have any such worriment as that
on my shoulders. And I tell you, Pauline, this
chance that has come to me is the chance of a
lifetime, the chance of a century! It means fortune,
fame and glory for me. It means—oh
Pauline, it means <i>everything</i>!”</p>
<p>“All right, Carr, I won’t interfere in anyway
with your work. I’ll do as you tell me, but—but
if they continue to suspect me,——”</p>
<p>“Suspect you! My <i>dear</i> girl! Let ’em try
it! I’ll see to that! Don’t you fear. If anything
bothers you, just leave it to me! Ah, here
come our truants. Now, Polly, for my sake,
leave all those subjects for the present, and be
your own dear entertaining self.”</p>
<p>And Pauline granted his request, and was so
attractive and charming that the Englishman
straightway fell over head and heels in love and
Mrs. MacDonald was torn between throes of
admiration and envy.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_302">[302]</div>
<h2 id="c23"><span class="small">XXIII</span> <br/>TWO WILLS</h2>
<p>For a few days Loria staid in Cairo, and devoted
all his time to the amusement and entertainment
of Pauline. Together they visited the
Sphinx and the Great Pyramids. Together
they made trips to Old Cairo and to the Ostrich
Farm. Together they saw the Little Petrified
Forest. But the immediate sights of Cairo, the
tombs, mosques and bazaars, Loria told her, she
could visit with Mrs. MacDonald or with their
dragoman, after he and Ahri had gone on their
trip up the Nile.</p>
<p>Pauline was happy. At Carr’s request she
had endeavored to put out of her mind the horrors
she had been through. Frightened at the
suspicions directed toward herself, fearing that
she could not successfully combat them,—and,
for another reason,—she had fled to Egypt, and
her cousin’s protection. This other reason she
had almost dismissed from her mind, and she
gave herself up to the enjoyment of the novelty
and interest of her present situation.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_303">[303]</div>
<p>After their sight-seeing each day, they returned
for tea on the Terrace at Shepheard’s or
went to Ghezireh Palace for it, or to the house
of some friend. Dinner was always a pleasant
affair, and they had frequent guests and were
often invited out.</p>
<p>As Pauline was wearing mourning, no large
social affairs were attended, and under Mrs.
MacDonald’s guidance the girl pursued her
happy way.</p>
<p>Nearly a week after Pauline’s arrival, Loria
told her that the next day he must leave her, and
go up the Nile to attend to his work there. They
were in the sitting room of Pauline’s pleasant
suite at the hotel, and Mrs. MacDonald promised
to cherish most carefully her charge in Loria’s
absence.</p>
<p>“How long shall you be away, Carr?” asked
Pauline.</p>
<p>“It’s uncertain, Polly. Perhaps only a few
days this time, perhaps a week. I’ll be back and
forth, you know, and you’re bound to find enough
to interest you. Keep me advised of any news
from America. You can always reach me by
mail or wire, or telephone if need be. And, here’s
another matter, Pauline. You know, this work
I’m up against is more or less dangerous.”</p>
<p>“Dangerous, how?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_304">[304]</div>
<p>“Well, there’s blasting and danger of cave-ins
and such matters,—but don’t feel alarmed,
I’ll probably come through all right. Only, I
want to make my will, so if anything should
happen, you’ll be my heir without any fuss about
it.”</p>
<p>“Oh, don’t talk about such things, Carr.
You frighten me.”</p>
<p>“Nonsense, don’t take it like that. Now, see
here. You know my way. Touch and go is my
motto. So, I’ve asked a lawyer chap to come
here to-night and fix up things. Suppose you
make your will, too. Then it will seem more like
a business matter, and not as if either of us expects
to die soon. Who’s your heir to be, Polly?”</p>
<p>“Why, I don’t know, I’ve never thought
about it.”</p>
<p>“But you ought to. You see, now you’re
<i>some</i> heiress, and it isn’t right not to have a will
made,—on general principles. To be sure, you
may marry,——”</p>
<p>“Oh, I don’t think I ever will, Carr!”</p>
<p>“Nonsense, Pollypops, of course you will.
But you must take your time and select a good
chappie. Now, how does this strike you?
Jeffries, my lawyer, is coming here, right away.
Suppose we each make a will, leaving all our
worldly goods to each other. Then, later, when
you decide on your life mate, you can change and
rearrange as you like.”</p>
<p>“But I haven’t any fortune yet. Aunt
Lucy’s estate isn’t all settled, is it?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_305">[305]</div>
<p>“No matter about that. It will be, in course
of time. I have every confidence in Haviland,
he’s as honest a chap as ever breathed. He’ll
fix up all our interests over there, in apple-pie
order and don’t you forget it! Humor me in
this thing, Polly, and believe I know more of
business affairs than you do, and it’s best to do
as I say.”</p>
<p>Pauline was easily persuaded, and as the arrangement
was conceded to be merely temporary,
she agreed. Jeffries came. The two wills
were drawn, signed and witnessed, all in correct
form. Loria, in his, bequeathed to Pauline all
he might die possessed of, and except for a few
charities and minor bequests, Pauline left her
fortune to Carr. The business was soon over,
and Loria took both documents, saying he would
put them in his Safe Deposit box for the present,
as Pauline had no place for valuable papers.</p>
<p>The next day, Loria, accompanied by the invaluable
Ahri, went away to the site of his projected
enterprise. This affair was conducted
with such strict secrecy that even the location
was not known to many. Actual work had not
yet been begun, but negotiations and preparations
of vast importance were being made, and
secret conclaves were held by those most interested.
Pauline had been emphatically adjured
to give not the least hint to any one
whatever of the project, and she had promised
faithfully to obey Carr’s injunctions.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_306">[306]</div>
<p>The next afternoon, a telegram from Fleming
Stone announced his arrival at Alexandria and
his immediate appearance in Cairo.</p>
<p>Addressed to her, in Loria’s care, Pauline
received it duly, for her mail was brought to her
at Shepheard’s, and Carr’s forwarded to him
wherever he might be. She had had a cable
from Haviland, but no American letters had yet
reached her. Stone, having sailed just a week
after Pauline’s departure from New York, was
arriving eight days after her own advent at
Cairo.</p>
<p>The girl’s first emotion was of joy. The
thought of seeing Stone again, eclipsed all other
thoughts.</p>
<p>“Oh, Mrs. Mac!” she cried, clasping that
somewhat rotund matron round the waist and
leading her an enforced dance. “Mr. Stone is
coming! Will be here for tea! Oh, I <i>am</i> so
glad!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_307">[307]</div>
<p>But her second thoughts were more disturbing.
<i>Why</i> was he coming? What were his suspicions?
Could he be tracking her down?
Though Fleming Stone had never said a word of
love to her, Pauline knew, by her own heart’s
‘detective instinct,’ that he <i>cared</i>. But, his
sense of duty might make it necessary to follow
where the trail of suspicion led, even at cost of
his own affections. Then, too, could he suspect?—But
Pauline’s irrepressible joy at thought of
seeing him left her little time or wish to indulge
in gloomy forebodings.</p>
<p>Singing, she ran off to dress for Stone’s reception.</p>
<p>“Which is prettier?” she asked of Mrs. Mac,
holding up an embroidered white crêpe, of Cairo
construction, and a black net gown, brought from
New York.</p>
<p>“Wear the white, Miss Stuart. It’s most becoming
to you.”</p>
<p>It was, and when arrayed in the lovely, soft,
clinging affair, with a cluster of tiny white rose-buds
at her belt, Pauline’s unusually pink cheeks
and her scarlet flower of a mouth gave all the
color necessary.</p>
<p>Her beautiful hair, piled in a crown atop her
little head, was held by a carved ivory comb, and
beneath their half-drooped lashes her great eyes
shone like stars.</p>
<p>For the Terrace, she donned a large white
hat, with black ostrich plumes, and flinging a
white cape edged with black fur over her arm,
she descended to meet her guest.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_308">[308]</div>
<p>Though little given to emotional demonstration,
Fleming Stone caught his breath with a
quick gasp at sight of her, and advanced with
outstretched hands and a smile of a sort no one
had ever before seen on that always calm face.</p>
<p>“How do you do?” she said, smiling; for,
though thrilled herself, she remembered the unfailing
curiosity of the Terrace crowds.</p>
<p>But Stone, having taken her two hands in
his, stood looking at her as if he intended to
pursue that occupation for the rest of his natural
life.</p>
<p>“Sit down,” she said, laughing a little nervously
under his gaze; “this is our table. Will
you have tea?”</p>
<p>“Tea, of course,” and at last Fleming Stone
took himself in hand and behaved like a reasonable
citizen. “And how are you? And your
cousin, where is he?”</p>
<p>“Mr. Loria is out of Cairo just now,” and
Pauline turned to give the waiter his order.
“But we are three, as I am under most strict
surveillance—” she paused, realizing what
that phrase meant to a detective! “Of a perfect
dragon of a chaperon,” she continued
bravely, trying to control her quivering lip.
“Here she comes now.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_309">[309]</div>
<p>The appearance and introduction of Mrs.
MacDonald gave Pauline time to regain her
poise, and a glance of pathetic appeal to Stone
made him take up the burden of conversation
for a few moments. And then, with the arrival
of the tea, the chat became gayer, and, of course,
impersonal.</p>
<p>The Englishman, Pitts, appeared, indeed, he
inevitably appeared when Pauline was on the
Terrace, and joined the group without invitation.</p>
<p>It was not Fleming Stone’s first visit to
Egypt, and he noted with interest the changes,
and looked with gladness on things unchanged,
as the kaleidoscopic scene whirled about him.</p>
<p>Later, they all went up to Pauline’s sitting
room, and viewed the street pageant from second-story
windows.</p>
<p>And then, Mrs. MacDonald, after a short and
losing battle between her conventions and her
kind-heartedness, insisted that Mr. Pitts must
take her across the street to buy some imperatively
necessary writing-paper.</p>
<p>Outwardly courteous but inwardly of a rampageous
unwillingness, Mr. Pitts acquiesced in
her scheme, and Fleming Stone politely closed
the door behind them.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_310">[310]</div>
<p>He turned, to see Pauline looking at him,
with a gaze, frightened, but,—yes, surely,—welcoming,
and not waiting to analyze the intent
of the gaze more deeply, Stone took a chance,
and in another instant, held her in his arms so
closely that the intent of her glance was of little
importance to anybody.</p>
<p>“Pauline!” he breathed, “how I love you!
My darling,—mine! No, no, don’t speak——”
and he laid his finger tips on her parted lips,
“Just look at me, and so—tell me——”</p>
<p>The wonderful eyes raised themselves to his,
and Stone’s phenomenal insight was not necessary
for him to read the message they held.</p>
<p>“You do love me!” he whispered: “oh, my
little girl!” and after a long, silent embrace, he
cried jubilantly: “Now tell me! Now tell me in
words, in words, Pauline, that you do!”</p>
<p>Unhesitatingly, without shyness, Pauline, radiant-faced,
whispered, “I love you, dear,” and
the vibrant tones filled the simple words to the
brim of assurance.</p>
<p>Though it seemed to them but a moment, it
was some time later that Mrs. MacDonald’s tap
sounded on the door.</p>
<p>“Come,” cried Pauline, springing away
from Stone’s side, while he sauntered to the
window. “Oh, Mrs. MacDonald, you must know
it at once! Mr. Stone is my fiancé!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_311">[311]</div>
<p>Mrs. Mac was duly surprised and delighted,
and, after congratulations, sent Stone away to
dress for dinner, and endeavored to calm down
her emotional charge.</p>
<p>Later that evening, Stone and Pauline sat in
the hall watching the people. Almost as much
alone as on a desert island, they conversed in
low tones, and Stone, between expressions of
adoration, told her of his theory of the beauty
charm.</p>
<p>With paling face, Pauline listened. “Who?”
she whispered. “Who? Do you suspect anybody?”</p>
<p>“You don’t know of your aunt ever having
consulted any beauty doctor or any such person?”</p>
<p>“Oh, no! I’m sure she never did. Never!”</p>
<p>“And you don’t know of any one who would
give her poison, under pretense of its being a
charm or beautifier?”</p>
<p>“Oh, don’t! Don’t ask me!” and, with a face
white as ashes, Pauline rose from her chair.
“You must excuse me, Mr. Stone. I am ill,—I
don’t feel well—. Really I must beg to be excused.”</p>
<p>Almost before he realized what she was doing,
Pauline had left him, glided to the elevator,
and he heard the door of the cage clang to, even
as he followed her.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_312">[312]</div>
<p>“Poor child!” he said to himself, “poor dear
little girl!” and going in quest of Mrs. MacDonald,
he asked her to go to Pauline.</p>
<p>“You will perhaps find her greatly disturbed,”
he said, “but I assure you it is nothing
that can be avoided or remedied. Please, Mrs.
MacDonald, just try to comfort and cheer her,
without asking the cause of her sadness.”</p>
<p>After a straightforward look into Stone’s
eyes, which was as frankly returned, Mrs. MacDonald
nodded her head and hastened away.</p>
<p>As Stone had predicted she found Pauline
sobbing hysterically.</p>
<p>“What is it, dear?” she queried, “tell Mrs.
Mac. Or, if you’d rather not, at least tell me
what I can do for you. Don’t, don’t cry so!”</p>
<p>But no words could she get from the sobbing
girl, except an insistent demand for a telegraph
blank. This was provided, and Pauline wrote a
message to Carr Loria telling him that Fleming
Stone had come to Cairo. This she ordered despatched
at once. Then she begged Mrs. MacDonald
to leave her, as she wished to go to bed
and try to forget her troubles in sleep.</p>
<p>Meantime, Fleming Stone left the hotel and
proceeded straight to Carr Loria’s rooms. He
expressed surprise when the janitor informed
him of Mr. Loria’s absence.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_313">[313]</div>
<p>“Well, never mind,” he said: “he’ll be back
in a few days. But I’ll just go in and write a
note and leave it on his desk for him.”</p>
<p>The janitor hesitated, but after a transference
of some coin of the realm was effected, he
cheerfully unlocked the door and Stone found
himself in Loria’s apartment. It was a comfortable
place, even luxurious, in a mannish way,
and the Detective looked about with interest.
As he had proposed, he went to the writing table
and taking a sheet of paper from the rack, wrote
a short note. But instead of leaving it, he put
it in his pocket, saying to the watchful janitor
that perhaps it would be better to mail it. Then,
he stepped into Loria’s bedroom, but so quickly
did he step out again, that the janitor hadn’t
time to reprove or forbid him.</p>
<p>“All right,” he said, as he started to leave.
“When Mr. Loria returns you can tell him I
called.”</p>
<p>This permission went far to allay the janitor’s
fears that he had been indiscreet; for Carr
Loria was not a man who brooked interference
with his affairs or belongings.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_314">[314]</div>
<h2 id="c24"><span class="small">XXIV</span> <br/>CONFESSION</h2>
<p>Carr Loria was at Heluan when he received
Pauline’s telegram. For a few moments he
studied it, and then going to a hotel office, he
possessed himself of a telegram blank which he
proceeded to write on, by the use of a type-writer
near-by.</p>
<p>With a preoccupied look on his face, as if
thinking deeply, he called Ahri and gave him
a long and careful list of directions.</p>
<p>And it was in pursuance of these directions
that the Arab presented himself at Shepheard’s
at ten o’clock in the morning and asked for Miss
Stuart.</p>
<p>“What is it, Ahri?” asked Pauline, as she
received the dragoman in her sitting room.</p>
<p>“Miss Stoort,” and the Arab was deeply
respectful, “Mr. Loria begs that you go with me
to Sakkara to visit the Pyramids and Necropolis.”</p>
<p>“Now?” said Pauline, in surprise.</p>
<p>“Yes, my lady. Mr. Loria will himself meet
you at the station. Will you start at once,
please?”</p>
<p>“But I am expecting a caller—Mr.
Stone,——”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_315">[315]</div>
<p>“Pardon, but Mr. Loria said if you hesitated
for any reason, to implore you to go with me
quickly, and he will explain all.”</p>
<p>Pauline paled a little, but she said, simply,
“Very well, Ahri, I will go at once.”</p>
<p>Escorted by the silent, majestic-mannered
Arab, Pauline was taken through the crowded
streets to the station, and they boarded a train
just as it was leaving.</p>
<p>“We did get the train, Miss Stoort,” said
Ahri, with his sad smile, “Mr. Loria would be
greatly mad if we had missed it. Yes.”</p>
<p>Pauline nodded at him, her thoughts full of
the spoiled day, which she had hoped to spend
with Stone.</p>
<p>Yet she longed to see Carr, she wanted to tell
him what Mr. Stone had said about the beauty
charm and——</p>
<p>“You said Mr. Loria would meet us at the
station, Ahri; you put me on the train so quickly
I had no chance to speak. Where is he?”</p>
<p>“Not the Cairo station, my lady. The station
at Bedrashein.”</p>
<p>“Where is that?”</p>
<p>“Where we are going. We alight there to
see the ruins of Memphis and the Pyramids of
Sakkara.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_316">[316]</div>
<p>Pauline looked puzzled, but said no more and
sat silently wrapped in her own thoughts, now
of Stone, now of Carr, and again of herself.</p>
<p>At Bedrashein, they left the train. Pauline
looked anxiously around but saw nothing of her
cousin.</p>
<p>“I do not see him,” said Ahri, gravely, meeting
her inquiring glance; “but I obey his orders.
He said, if he be not here, we go to the desert to
meet him.”</p>
<p>“To the desert? How? Where?”</p>
<p>“This way. Here are our carts.” Ahri led
the way to where two sand-carts stood waiting,
evidently for them. They were a little like English
dog-carts and drawn by desert horses.</p>
<p>“You take that one, Miss Stoort, and I this,”
directed Ahri, standing with outstretched hand,
like a commanding officer.</p>
<p>Bewildered but knowing the responsibility
of Carr’s servant, Pauline got into the cart he
indicated. She did not at all like the looks of
the gaunt black Moor who drove her, but thought
best to say nothing. She had learned never to
show fear of the native servants, and she held
her head high, and gave the driver only a
haughty stare. Ahri, after she was arranged
for, sprang into the other cart, and they set off.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_317">[317]</div>
<p>The road was through the village, through
palm groves, past large expanses of water, and
at last through desert wastes, among foot-hills
that quickly cut off the view of the road just
traversed.</p>
<p>Pauline’s cart was ahead of the other, and
looking back she could not see the other one, in
which Ahri rode.</p>
<p>A strange feeling began to creep into her
heart. Covertly she glanced at her driver. The
hard bony face was not turned her way, but she
had an uncanny sense that the man was grinning
at her. Sternly she bade him stop and wait
for the other cart.</p>
<p>“No Ingleese,” he rejoined, with a dogged
expression on his ugly countenance.</p>
<p>“I command you,” and Pauline laid hold of
his arm, “I insist that you stop!”</p>
<p>“No Ingleese,” he repeated, and now he gave
her a distinctly impudent look and spurred the
horse to faster pace.</p>
<p>Pauline considered. She was frightened
beyond words to express, but she knew she must
not show fear. Haughtily she held her proud
little head aloft, and tried to think what was
best to do. Something was wrong, that she
knew, but whether it was Ahri who was at fault,
or this dreadful man beside her, or—or,—she
stifled back the thought of Loria.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_318">[318]</div>
<p>He would save her, she knew he would, cried
her worried brain, but in her heart was black
doubt. All the unadmitted fears she had known
of late, all the repressed suspicions, all the insistent
doubts, these came flocking, clamoring
for recognition.</p>
<p>On they went,—where they might be she had
no idea. Nothing could be seen but the never-ending
hills, not high, but of sufficient height to
cut off all view of anything but their sandy
slopes. Miles and miles they traversed. The
sun was under a cloud, and Pauline had no knowledge
of the direction they were taking. But
from the man’s grim, stony face, and cruel eyes,
she knew she was in dreadful, even desperate
danger. Courageously, she insisted over and
over that they stop. The reply was only a
shaken head and a reassertion that English was
an unknown tongue. This Pauline knew to be
a lie, from his intelligent expression at her
words. At last, desperately trying to control
her trembling hands, she offered her purse, if he
would stop.</p>
<p>To her surprise, he consented, and jerked his
horse to a stand-still. Pauline handed over the
purse, and the driver got out of the cart, indicating
by gestures that she should also alight,
and rest herself.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_319">[319]</div>
<p>The cart was small, and the ride had been
uncomfortable, so after a moment’s thought
Pauline jumped out. She reasoned that the
man having her money, had no desire to prolong
the trip, and in a moment they would go back to
Bedrashein. Often had she heard of these robberies,
and she felt that, cupidity satisfied, she
had little to fear.</p>
<p>But no sooner was she on the ground, than
the Moor sprang again into his cart, and whipping
up his horse, sped away across the desert
sand and in a minute rounded a hill and was out
of sight.</p>
<p>Pauline looked after him an instant, and then,
realizing to the uttermost what it meant,—that
she was abandoned to her fate in a trackless
desert,—fell in a little heap on the sands and
fainted away.</p>
<p class="tb">It was about eleven o’clock on the morning
of that same day, that Carr Loria went to Shepheard’s
Hotel and asked for Fleming Stone.</p>
<p>The two men met, and eyed each other appraisingly.
There was no light chat, each was
of serious face and in grave mood.</p>
<p>Loria spoke first, after the short greeting.
“I have a telegram from my cousin, Miss
Stuart,” he said, drawing a paper from his
pocket. “I know why you are here, Mr. Stone,
and I think best to show you this. Frankly, I
am glad of it.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_320">[320]</div>
<p>Stone took the message, and read:</p>
<blockquote>
<p>I have run away again. I am afraid of F. S. Don’t try
to find me, I am all right, and I will communicate with you
after he goes back to U. S. I positively will not make my
whereabouts known as long as he is in Cairo. Don’t worry.</p>
<p><span class="jr"><span class="sc">Polly.</span></span></p>
</blockquote>
<p>“We may as well be honest with one another,”
Loria went on. “I gather, from your
presence here, that you know my cousin is guilty
of the death of her aunt; but you <i>don’t</i> know,
you <i>can’t</i> know, what that poor girl had to put
up with. I can’t blame her, that in a moment
of,—really of temporary insanity,—she let herself
be tempted——”</p>
<p>“I’m sorry to cut short this interview, Mr.
Loria,” said Stone, in his quiet way, “but, truly,
I’ve a most important engagement just now. If
I could see you, say this evening, and talk these
things over by ourselves——”</p>
<p>“Surely, Mr. Stone. I must return to my
work to-morrow, but I’ll see you to-night. Will
you come to my place?”</p>
<p>“Yes, I will. About nine?”</p>
<p>“Nine it is,” and Loria swung away, as Fleming
Stone turned and hastened into the hotel.</p>
<p>Straight to Mrs. MacDonald he went and
asked where Pauline was.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_321">[321]</div>
<p>“She went to visit Memphis and Sakkara
with her cousin,” said the smiling chaperon.
“That is, she went with her cousin’s dragoman,
and Mr. Loria met them at Bedrashein.”</p>
<p>“Oh, <i>did he</i>! Now listen, Mrs. MacDonald.
Miss Stuart is in danger. I am sure of this.
I am going to her aid, but I may not——” Stone
choked, “I may not succeed soon. Tell me of
this dragoman. What does he look like?”</p>
<p>Graphically, Mrs. MacDonald described the
statuesque Ahri, and almost before she stopped
speaking, Stone was flying along the corridor,
down the stairs, and out at the door.</p>
<p>He caught a train to Bedrashein, and the first
person he bumped into at the little station was
Ahri himself waiting for the train to Cairo.</p>
<p>Fleming Stone went straight to the point.
“Look here, Ahri,” he said to the astonished
Arab, who had never seen him before, “what
have you done with Miss Stuart?”</p>
<p>For once the phlegmatic Arab was caught off
his guard.</p>
<p>“What do you mean?” he stammered. “I
have not seen her to-day.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_322">[322]</div>
<p>“Don’t lie to me,” and Stone gave him a
look that cowed him. “Now listen. You’re in
Mr. Loria’s pay. All right. He paid you well
for the job you’ve just done. Now, I’ll pay you
twice,—three times as well to undo it. Moreover,
I’ll inform you straight that you’ll never
work for Mr. Loria again. He’s a villain, a
wicked man. Take my advice, Ahri, give him up
and come over to me. By so doing, you’ll not
only escape punishment for your work to-day,
but get a fresh start toward a good position.
I don’t believe you’re a bad man at heart, Ahri.
At least, I don’t believe you’ll continue to be if
you’re better paid to be good.”</p>
<p>Stone was right about this, and the talk
ended in another expedition of two sand-carts
into the desert. Ahri in one, with a native
driver, Stone alone in the other, driving himself.
Ahri’s cart was driven by the same Moor that
had driven Pauline only two or three hours before.
Stone followed them, the wicked driver
easily bought over to betray the place where he
had left Pauline.</p>
<p>And there they found her.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_323">[323]</div>
<p>Crouched at the base of a small hill, worn out
by weeping and despair, racked by fright and
terror, she had fallen into a fitful slumber from
sheer exhaustion. Jumping from his cart, Stone
waved the others back and went to her. On her
face were traces of tears. Her gloves and handkerchief
were torn in strips by her agonized
frenzies. Her shoulders were huddled as if in
frantic fear, and her face was drawn and
pinched with anguish. But in spite of all this,
Stone thought he had never seen her look so
beautiful. Stepping nearer he lifted her to her
feet, and unheeding the observers, he clasped
her closely in his arms, and whispered endearing
words.</p>
<p>Pauline, her eyes still closed, murmured,
“it’s only a dream. I must not wake, I <i>must</i>
not!”</p>
<p>“No dream, darling,” said the strong, glad
voice in her ear. “Does this seem like a
dream?” and his lips met hers in a long, close
kiss.</p>
<p>Then her eyes opened, wondering, and lest
she should faint from very joy, Stone carried
her to the cart and placed her in it. Jumping
in beside her, he ordered the other cart to lead
and they started back.</p>
<p>Neither Pauline nor Stone ever forgot that
ride. At first, she was content to ask no questions,
happy in his nearness and her own rescue
from an awful fate. But, later, she inquired
about Loria.</p>
<p>“You must know the truth soon, dearest,”
said Stone, gently, “so I’ll tell you, in part now.
Your cousin is a wicked man, Pauline, and you
must grasp this fact before I go on.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_324">[324]</div>
<p>“Carr wicked?” and Pauline paled and
trembled as if struck with a sudden blow.</p>
<p>“Yes, it was his hand, his will, that sent you
to be lost in the desert. He showed me a false
telegram, saying you had run away from me!”</p>
<p>“What? oh, I can’t believe it!”</p>
<p>“Well, don’t try now,” and Stone smiled at
her. “It’s all I can do to manage this fiery
steed without trying to tell you unbelievable
things at the same time. Let me tell you something
more easy of credulity.”</p>
<p>Pauline’s smile was permission, and Stone
had no difficulty in convincing her of certain self-evident
truths.</p>
<p>By the time the trio reached Cairo, Ahri was
as staunch a follower and as true a slave of
Fleming Stone as he had been of Carrington
Loria. At Stone’s direction he returned to his
former master, for the present, and gave no hint
of the later development of the kidnapping
scheme.</p>
<p>“All went off as planned?” said Loria, secure
in his servant’s fidelity.</p>
<p>“Yes, master,” answered the devoted trusty,
and Loria said no more on the subject.</p>
<p>That evening when Fleming Stone went to
Carr Loria’s rooms, he was accompanied by
Pauline and the Englishman, Pitts.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_325">[325]</div>
<p>Loria started at sight of his cousin, but
quickly recovered his poise and jauntily asked
her where she had come from.</p>
<p>“No place like Cairo, for me,” she replied
in the same light tone, and they all sat down in
Loria’s den.</p>
<p>“More company than I expected,” he said,
as he bustled about, seating them. “Ahri, another
chair.”</p>
<p>Ahri obeyed the request, and then softly
left the room.</p>
<p>“Mr. Loria,” said Stone, directly, “there is
no use wasting words, we are here to accuse you
of the murder of your aunt and the attempted
murder of your cousin.”</p>
<p>Carr Loria’s face blanched, but he tried to
put on a bold front.</p>
<p>“What do you mean by this nonsense? Is it
a joke?”</p>
<p>“By no means; I have all the proofs of your
crimes and I ask you if you will confess here,
or to the Police?”</p>
<p>“Friend Pitts, I believe, is connected with
the Police,” and Loria laughed grimly.</p>
<p>“Yes, he is. Have you anything to say?”</p>
<p>“Only to deny your accusations. Except
that it’s too absurd even to deny such foolish
talk. What do you mean anyway?”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_326">[326]</div>
<p>“That you poisoned Miss Lucy Carrington,
wilfully and purposely, by sending her a dose
of powdered aconite, under the pretense of its
being a beauty charm that would bring fairness
and youth to her plain face.”</p>
<p>Carr Loria’s jaw dropped. He looked at
Stone as if at something supernatural. “W—what?”
he stammered.</p>
<p>“You did it to get her money, <i>now</i>, to go on
with your work in the bed of the Nile. Then, in
order to get your cousin’s share of the fortune,
you sent her away to die in the desert, having
first induced her to will you her money.”</p>
<p>“Ha, ha,” laughed Loria, feebly. “Poor
joke, Stone, pretty poor joke, I say! Murdered
my own aunt! Not much I didn’t!”</p>
<p>“Carr Loria, listen!” Impressively Stone
held up his finger, to adjure silence, and at the
same time he bent on Loria a glance of accusation
that made him cringe. But, fascinated, he
stared into Stone’s eyes, and in the death-like
silence came a voice,—the voice of Lucy Carrington,—in
a burst of ringing laughter! Loria’s
eyes seemed to start from his head, and the
sweat gathered in great drops on his forehead,
as the voice of his aunt spoke: “This song is one
of Carr’s favorites,” they heard, distinctly.
“I’ll sing it for him.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_327">[327]</div>
<p>Then, in Miss Lucy’s high, clear notes, came
the song, “Oh, Believe Me If All Those Endearing
Young Charms.”</p>
<p>Before the last strains came, Loria was raving
like a maniac. He had never heard of the
phonograph records of his aunt’s songs, for
they had meant to surprise him with them on his
next trip home.</p>
<p>“Have mercy!” he cried: “stop her! Oh,
my God! what does it all mean?”</p>
<p>“Confess,” ordered Fleming Stone.</p>
<p>“I will confess! I do confess! I did send
her the powder, just as you say. I wrote her to
dress up like Cleopatra, and put on her pearls,
and scarabs, and fasten an asp, a paper one, at
her throat, and take the stuff, and it would cause
Cleopatra’s beauty to come to her. I told her to
hold in her hand something belonging to the
man she loved. It was a great scheme,—a fine
scheme,——” Loria was babbling insanely now.
“I don’t see how any one ever found it out. I
was so careful! I made her promise to burn all
my notes and letters about it, before I would
send the powder. <i>Who</i> suspected it? I planned
everything so carefully—<i>so</i> carefully—Made
her promise to burn everything,—everything—letters
of instruction, powder-papers, everything
must be burned, I said—everything,—and
she said, yes, Carr, everything. Over and over
I wrote it. Told her that if she left anything
unburnt the charm wouldn’t work, and it
didn’t. Ha, ha,” with a demoniac chuckle, “it
didn’t!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_328">[328]</div>
<p>“Take me away, I can’t stand it,” moaned
Pauline.</p>
<p>Again there was a silence. The phonograph
had ceased; Loria sat, with his head fallen forward
on his hands, at his table. He was still,
and Stone wondered if he were alive. Then,
suddenly, he lifted his head, and cried out.</p>
<p>“Yes, I did it because I was crazy, <i>wild</i> over
my Nile scheme. Ah, that wonderful work! It
will never be done now. When I heard Stone
was here I knew it was all up. I planned to lose
Polly for a time,—not forever, no, <i>not</i> forever—I
would have found her some day,—some day,—all
dead, in the desert, all dead——”</p>
<p>Pauline fainted and Stone flew to her side.
But in a moment she revived, and he begged her
to go home. She consented, and Ahri, dependable
now, took her to the hotel.</p>
<p>Fleming Stone and Mr. Pitts attempted to
get Loria to calm down and talk more coherently.
Shortly he did so. He gave a full account
of all the details of his crime, and though
he denied the intention of leaving Pauline to die
in the desert, his word was not believed by the
two listeners.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_329">[329]</div>
<p>Finally, he rose and walked across the room.
“You see,” he said, a little wearily, but quite
sane, now, “I’ve a bad streak in me. My father
was a Spaniard and he killed his own uncle.
The Loria line is a series of criminals. Aunt
Lucy never knew this, for my parents lived always
abroad. But blood will tell. And my
father, after he killed my uncle, followed it up
by taking his own life,—like this,——”</p>
<p>Though Stone caught the gesture and sprang
to prevent it, Loria was too quick for him. He
had snatched a dagger from the table, and
plunged it into his heart.</p>
<p>Both men leaped at him, but it was all over
in an instant. Carr Loria had himself dealt
the punishment for his crimes.</p>
<p>“Perhaps it’s as well,” said Stone, musingly.
“A trial, and all that, would have been
awful for his cousin, and the family connections.
Now the matter can be disposed of with far less
notoriety and publicity.”</p>
<p>“Yes,” agreed Pitts.</p>
<p>Fleming Stone waited till morning to tell
Pauline of her cousin’s death. She was wide-eyed
and pathetically sad, but composed.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_330">[330]</div>
<p>“It is all so dreadful,” she said, “but, Fleming,
I knew it before I left New York. I didn’t
<i>know</i> it, exactly, but I felt sure it must be so, and
I had to come here to see. Then I found Carr so
gay and light-hearted I thought I must be mistaken,
and I was glad, too. Then when you
came, I couldn’t make up my mind whether you
suspected Carr, or whether——”</p>
<p>“Whether I came only to see you,” supplied
Stone. “It was both, dear.”</p>
<p>“What made you think of Carr, in the first
place?”</p>
<p>“Because there was no real evidence against
any one else, though the police were making
things dangerous for you, my little girl.” Stone
held her close, as if even yet there might be a
hint of danger. “And I made Miss Frayne confess
that she didn’t really see you leave your
aunt’s room that night, though she did honestly
think that you were in there, and your aunt
was talking to you. Nor you didn’t see her
actually leaving the room, did you?”</p>
<p>“I only saw her with her hand on the door-knob.
That was my first glimpse of her, and I
thought she was coming out.”</p>
<p>“No; she thought of going in to apologize
for her hasty temper. But, hearing a voice, she
paused, and so thrilling was the talk she overheard,
she waited there some minutes.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_331">[331]</div>
<p>“And then, you thought of Carr?”</p>
<p>“I sized up all the people who had motive,
and Loria was surely in that category. And
then I found the powder-papers. Dear, those
would have gone sorely against you if any one
else had discovered them. I resolved to wrest
the secret from those papers, and I did!”</p>
<p>“You did? How?”</p>
<p>“By studying them for hours; with magnifying
glasses, and without. I found at last a
clue,—a possible clue,—in the fact that the
edges of the papers had been cut with the
curved blades of a pair of manicure scissors.
I had Jane bring me all the manicure scissors
in the house,—thank Heaven, <i>your</i> scissors
didn’t come within a mile of fitting the edges!
You see, the papers were faintly scalloped on
every edge. They <i>must</i> have been cut by the
little curved blades, and rarely do two pairs of
manicure scissors make the same scallop. The
great discovery was that Miss Lucy’s own scissors
did fit them! This, dearest, would have
pointed to you in the eyes of these determined
police, for you had access to your aunt’s toilet
appointments.”</p>
<p>“So did Anita or anybody in the house!”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_332">[332]</div>
<p>“Yes, but the police were hot on your track,
and ready to bend any hint your way. Oh,
thank God, that I could and did save you!
Well, I further noticed that these scissors of
Miss Carrington’s were of a different pattern
from the brushes and mirrors of her set. I
went to Estelle, and she told me that the last
time Carr Loria was at home he took a great
fancy to his aunt’s scissors and asked her to
give them to him. She did, and when she tried
to get another pair with that especial shaped
blade, she could do so only by taking a different
patterned handle! Do you wonder that I came
straight over here?”</p>
<p>“No,” and the lovely eyes beamed with admiration
of Stone’s cleverness, as well as with
affection.</p>
<p>“Then, last night, I went to Loria’s rooms,
and found not only the scissors, that fitted
exactly the scalloped papers, but found that the
outside powder wrapper is undoubtedly a piece
of his own writing-paper. It is the same color
and texture. Moreover, as he confessed it all,
there is no further room for doubt. Another
hint I had was when I found some of Loria’s
letters in your aunt’s desk. Not their contents,
they were just such as any affectionate nephew
might write his aunt, but the chirography. You
know the letter from him that you showed me,
was typewritten, and I judged nothing from it.
But his handwriting,—I have studied the
science,—gave evidence of criminal traits, and
I felt sure then I was on the right track. I
brought the phonograph record to frighten him
into confession, and it did. Ahri started it, in
the next room, at my signal.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_333">[333]</div>
<p>“I might have known you would do it. When
I came here, you know, I wrote and asked you
to drop the case. I feared your investigations
would lead to Carr.”</p>
<p>“It had to be a question of his guilt or
yours,” returned Stone gravely. “You don’t
know, darling, how near you were to arrest!
Let’s not think of it ever again. I’ll engage to
keep your dear mind occupied with pleasant
thoughts all the rest of our life. You don’t want
to stay in Cairo, do you? Shall we try Algiers
for a honeymoon spot? Or, if you don’t want
Africa at all, how about Greece, or over to Algeciras?
Whither away, my Heart’s Dearest?”</p>
<p>“Whither? Together, then what matter
whither?” said Pauline, her eyes full of a love
deep enough to drown the sorrows that had
filled the past weeks.</p>
<p>“Together always,” he responded, holding
her to him; “always, my Pauline.”</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_335">[335]</div>
<h3 id="c25"><i>CAROLYN WELLS’</i></h3>
<blockquote>
<p><i>Baffling detective stories in which Fleming Stone,
the great American Detective, displays his remarkable
ingenuity for unravelling mysteries</i></p>
</blockquote>
<br/>THE WHITE ALLEY
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.25 net.
<br/>ANYBODY BUT ANNE
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.25 net.
<br/>THE MAXWELL MYSTERY
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.25 net.
<br/>A CHAIN OF EVIDENCE
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.25 net.
<br/>THE CLUE
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.25 net.
<br/>THE GOLD BAG
<br/>Colored frontispiece. 12mo. Decorated cloth, $1.20 net.
<h3 id="c26">J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY’S <br/>New and Forthcoming Books</h3>
<h4 id="c27">Peg Along</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By GEORGE L. WALTON, M.D. 12mo. Cloth, $1.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Dr. Walton’s slogan, “Why Worry,” swept the country.
His little book of that title did an infinite amount of good.
“Peg Along” is the 1915 slogan. Hundreds of thousands
of fussers, fretters, semi- and would-be invalids, and all
other halters by the wayside should be reached by
Dr. Walton’s stirring encouragement to “peg along.” In
this new book he shows us how to correct our missteps of
care, anxiety, fretting, fear, martyrism, over-insistence,
etc., by teaching us real steps in the chapters on work
and play, managing the mind, Franklin’s and Bacon’s
methods, etc., etc. Send copies of this inspiring little work
to friends who appreciate bright wisdom. Win them into
joyful, happy “peggers along” to health and happiness.</p>
<h4 id="c28">Under the Red Cross Flag
<br/><span class="small">At Home and Abroad</span></h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By MABEL T. BOARDMAN, Chairman of the National Relief
Board, American Red Cross.</p>
<p>Foreword by PRESIDENT WOODROW WILSON.</p>
<p>Fully illustrated. Decorated cloth. Gilt top. $1.50 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>The American Red Cross and the name of Miss Boardman
have been inseparably connected for many years; her own
story is one of fascinating human interest to all who feel a
bond of sympathy with those who suffer. To-day it is
the European War, but in unforgotten yesterdays there
was the Philippine Typhoon, the Vesuvian Eruption, the
Chinese Famine, and almost countless other disasters
in which the heroes and heroines of the Red Cross have
worked and met danger in their effort to alleviate the
sufferings of humanity. This is the only complete historical
work upon the subject that has yet been written;
no one, accounting experience and literary ability, is
better fitted to present the facts than is the author.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_336">[336]</div>
<h4 id="c29">Joseph Pennell’s Pictures In the Land of Temples</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>With 40 plates in photogravure from lithographs. Introduction
by W. H. D. Rouse, Litt.D. Crown quarto. Lithograph on
cover. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Mr. Pennell’s wonderful drawings present to us the
immortal witnesses of the “Glory that was Greece” just
as they stand to-day, in their environment and the golden
atmosphere of Hellas. Whether it be the industrial giants
portrayed in “Pictures of the Panama Canal” or antique
temples presented in this fascinating volume, the great
lithographer proves himself to be a master craftsman of
this metier. The art of Greece is perhaps dead, but we
are fortunate in having such an interpreter. There is
every promise that this book will have the same value
among artists and book lovers as had his others.</p>
<div class="verse">
<p class="t0">“The isles of Greece, the isles of Greece!</p>
<p class="t0">Where burning Sappho loved and sung,”</p>
</div>
<p>have never had a more appreciative and sympathetic lover.</p>
<h4 id="c30">Christmas Carol</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By CHARLES DICKENS. 13 illustrations in color and many
in black and white by Arthur Rackham. Octavo. Decorated
cloth. $1.50 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>All the praise that can be showered upon Joseph Pennell
as a master lithographer, is also the due mead of Arthur
Rackham as the most entrancing and mysterious color
illustrator in Europe. His work is followed by an army
of picture lovers of all types and of all ages, from the
children in the nurseries whose imagination he stirs with
the fiery-eyed dragons of some fairy illustration, to the
ambitious artists in every country who look to him as an
inspiring master.</p>
<p>If the decision had been left to the book-reading and
picture-loving public as to the most eligible story for
treatment, we believe that the Christmas Carol would
have been chosen. The children must see old Scrooge
and Tiny Tim as Rackham draws them.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_337">[337]</div>
<h4 id="c31">Historic Virginia Homes and Churches</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By ROBERT A. LANCASTER, JR. About 300 illustrations and
a photogravure frontispiece. Quarto. In a box, cloth, gilt top,
$7.50 net. Half morocco, $12.50 net. A Limited Edition printed
from type, uniform with the Pennells’ “Our Philadelphia.”</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Virginians are justly proud of the historical and architectural
glories of the Old Dominion. All America looks
to Virginia as a Cradle of American thought and culture.
This volume is a monument to Virginia, persons and places,
past and present. It has been printed in a limited edition
and the type has been distributed. This is not a volume
of padded value; it is not a piece of literary hack-work.
It has been a labor of love since first undertaken some
twenty-five years ago. The State has done her part by
providing the rich material, the Author his with painstaking
care and loving diligence, and the Publishers theirs
by expending all the devices of the bookmaker’s art.</p>
<h4 id="c32">Quaint and Historic Forts of North America</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By JOHN MARTIN HAMMOND, Author of “Colonial Mansions
of Maryland and Delaware.” With photogravure frontispiece
and sixty-five illustrations. Ornamental cloth, gilt top,
in a box. $5.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This is an unique volume treating a phase of American
history that has never before been presented. Mr. Hammond,
in his excellent literary style with the aid of a
splendid camera, brings us on a journey through the existing
old forts of North America and there describes their
appearances and confides in us their romantic and historic
interest. We follow the trail of the early English, French
and Spanish adventurers, and the soldiers of the Revolution,
the War of 1812 and the later Civil and Indian Wars.
We cover the entire country from Quebec and Nova Scotia
to California and Florida, with a side trip to Havana to
appreciate the weird romance of the grim Morro Castle.
Here is something new and unique.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_338">[338]</div>
<h4 id="c33">The Magic of Jewels and Charms</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By GEORGE FREDERICK KUNZ, A.M., PH.D., D.SC.
With numerous plates in color, doubletone and line. Decorated
cloth, gilt top, in a box. $5.00 net. Half morocco, $10.00
net. Uniform in style and size with “The Curious Lore of
Precious Stones.” The two volumes in a box, $10.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>It will probably be a new and surely a fascinating subject
to which Dr. Kunz introduces the reader. The most
primitive savage and the most highly developed Caucasian
find mystic meanings, symbols, sentiments and, above
all, beauty in jewels and precious stones; it is of this magic
lore that the distinguished author tells us. In past ages
there has grown up a great literature upon the subject—books
in every language from Icelandic to Siamese, from
Sanskrit to Irish—the lore is as profound and interesting
as one can imagine. In this volume you will find the
unique information relating to the magical influence which
precious stones, amulets and crystals have been supposed
to exert upon individuals and events.</p>
<h4 id="c34">The Civilization of Babylonia and Assyria</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By MORRIS JASTROW, JR., PH.D., LL.D. 140 illustrations.
Octavo. Cloth, gilt top, in a box, $6.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This work covers the whole civilization of Babylonia
and Assyria, and by its treatment of the various aspects
of that civilization furnishes a comprehensive and complete
survey of the subject. The language, history,
religion, commerce, law, art and literature are thoroughly
presented in a manner of deep interest to the general
reader and indispensable to historians, clergymen, anthropologists
and sociologists. The volume is elaborately
illustrated and the pictures have been selected with the
greatest care so as to show every aspect of this civilization,
which alone disputes with that of Egypt, the fame of
being the oldest in the world. For Bible scholars the
comparisons with Hebrew traditions and records will have
intense interest.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_339">[339]</div>
<h4 id="c35">English Ancestral Homes of Noted Americans</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By ANNE HOLLINGSWORTH WHARTON, Author of “In
Chateau Land,” etc., etc. 28 illustrations, 12mo. Cloth $2.00
net. Half morocco, $4.00 net</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Miss Wharton so enlivens the past that she makes the
distinguished characters of whom she treats live and talk
with us. She has recently visited the homelands of a number
of our great American leaders and we seem to see upon
their native heath the English ancestors of George Washington,
Benjamin Franklin, William Penn, the Pilgrim
Fathers and Mothers, the Maryland and Virginia Cavaliers
and others who have done their part in the making
of the United States. Although this book is written in an
entertaining manner, and with many anecdotes and by-paths
to charm the reader, it is a distinct addition to the
literature of American history and will make a superb gift
for the man or woman who takes pride in his or her library.</p>
<h4 id="c36">Heroes and Heroines of Fiction Classical, Mediaeval and Legendary</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By WILLIAM S. WALSH. Half morocco, Reference Library
style, $3.00 net. Uniform with “Heroes and Heroines of Fiction,
Modern Prose and Poetry.” The two volumes in a box,
$6.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>The fact that the educated men of to-day are not as
familiar with the Greek and Roman classics as were their
fathers gives added value to Mr. Walsh’s fascinating compilation.
He gives the name and setting of all the any-wise
important characters in the literature of classical,
mediæval and legendary times. To one who is accustomed
to read at all widely, it will be found of the greatest assistance
and benefit; to one who writes it will be invaluable.
These books comprise a complete encyclopedia of interesting,
valuable and curious facts regarding all the characters
of any note whatever in literature. This is the
latest addition to the world-famous Lippincott’s Readers’
Reference Library. Each volume, as published, has become
a standard part of public and private libraries.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_340">[340]</div>
<p class="center"><i>A Wonderful Story of Heroism</i></p>
<h4 id="c37">The Home of the Blizzard</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By SIR DOUGLAS MAWSON. Two volumes. 315 remarkable
photographs. 16 colored plates, drawings, plans, maps, etc.
8vo. $9.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Have you heard Sir Douglas lecture? If you have, you
will want to read this book that you may become better
acquainted with his charming personality, and to preserve
in the three hundred and fifteen superb illustrations with
the glittering text, a permanent record of the greatest
battle that has ever been waged against the wind, the
snow, the crevice ice and the prolonged darkness of over
two years in Antarctic lands.</p>
<p>It has been estimated by critics as the most interesting
and the greatest account of Polar Exploration. For instance,
the London Athenæum, an authority, said: “No
polar book ever written has surpassed these volumes in
sustained interest or in the variety of the subject matter.”
It is indeed a tale of pluck, heroism and infinite endurance
that comes as a relief in the face of accounts of the same
qualities sacrificed in Europe for a cause so less worthy.</p>
<p>To understand “courage” you must read the author’s
account of his terrific struggle alone in the blizzard,—an
eighty-mile fight in a hurricane snow with his two companions
left dead behind him.</p>
<p>The wild life in the southern seas is multitudinous; whole
armies of dignified penguins were caught with the camera;
bluff old sea-lions and many a strange bird of this new
continent were so tame that they could be easily approached.
For the first time actual colored photographs
bring to us the flaming lights of the untrodden land. They
are unsurpassed in any other work.</p>
<p>These volumes will be a great addition to your library;
whether large or small, literary or scientific, they are an
inspiration, a delight to read.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_341">[341]</div>
<h4 id="c38">Heart’s Content</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By RALPH HENRY BARBOUR. Illustrations in color by
H. Weston Taylor. Page Decorations by Edward Stratton Holloway.
Handsome cloth binding. In sealed packet. $1.50 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This is the tale of a summer love affair carried on by an
unusual but altogether bewitching lover in a small summer
resort in New England. Allan Shortland, a gentleman,
a tramp, a poet, and withal the happiest of happy men,
is the hero; Beryl Vernon, as pretty as the ripple of her
name, is the heroine. Two more appealing personalities
are seldom found within the covers of a book. Fun and
plenty of it, romance and plenty of it,—and an end full
of happiness for the characters, and to the reader regret
that the story is over. The illustrations by H. Weston
Taylor, the decorations by Edward Stratton Holloway and
the tasteful sealed package are exquisite.</p>
<p class="tbcenter"><i>A New Volume in THE STORIES ALL CHILDREN LOVE SERIES</i></p>
<h4 id="c39">Heidi</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By JOHANNA SPYRI. Translated by ELISABETH P.
STORK. Introduction by Charles Wharton Stork. With eight
illustrations in color by Maria L. Kirk. 8vo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This is the latest addition to the Stories All Children
Love Series. The translation of the classic story has
been accomplished in a marvellously simple and direct
fashion,—it is a high example of the translator’s art.
American children should be as familiar with it as they
are with “Swiss Family Robinson,” and we feel certain
that on Christmas Day joy will be brought to the
nurseries in which this book is a present. The illustrations
by Maria L. Kirk are of the highest calibre,—the
color, freshness and fantastic airiness present just the
spark to kindle the imagination of the little tots.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_342">[342]</div>
<p class="tbcenter"><i>HEWLETT’S GREATEST WORK: Romance, Satire and a German</i></p>
<h4 id="c40">The Little Iliad</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By MAURICE HEWLETT. Colored frontispiece by Edward Burne-Jones. 12mo. $1.35 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>A “Hewlett” that you and every one else will enjoy!
It combines the rich romance of his earliest work with the
humor, freshness and gentle satire of his more recent.</p>
<p>The whimsical, delightful novelist has dipped his pen
in the inkhorn of modern matrimonial difficulties and
brings it out dripping with amiable humor, delicious but
fantastic conjecture. Helen of Troy lives again in the
Twentieth Century, but now of Austria; beautiful, bewitching,
love-compelling, and with it all married to a
ferocious German who has drained the cup and is now
squeezing the dregs of all that life has to offer. He has
locomotor ataxia but that does not prevent his Neitschean
will from dominating all about him, nor does it prevent
Maurice Hewlett from making him one of the most interesting
and portentous characters portrayed by the hand
of an Englishman in many a day. Four brothers fall in
love with the fair lady,—there are amazing but happy
consequences. The author has treated an involved story
in a delightful, naive and refreshing manner.</p>
<h4 id="c41">The Sea-Hawk</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By RAPHAEL SABATINI. 12mo. Cloth. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Sabatini has startled the reading public with this magnificent
romance! It is a thrilling treat to find a vivid,
clean-cut adventure yarn. Sincere in this, we beg you,
brothers, fathers, husbands and comfortable old bachelors,
to read this tale and even to hand it on to your friends of
the fairer sex, provided you are certain that they do not
mind the glint of steel and the shrieks of dying captives.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_343">[343]</div>
<h4 id="c42">The Man From the Bitter Roots</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By CAROLINE LOCKHART. 3 illustrations in color by Gayle Hoskins. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>“Better than ‘Me-Smith’”—that is the word of those
who have read this story of the powerful, quiet, competent
Bruce Burt. You recall the humor of “Me-Smith,”—wait
until you read the wise sayings of Uncle Billy and
the weird characters of the Hinds Hotel. You recall some
of those flashing scenes of “Me-Smith”—wait until you
read of the blizzard in the Bitter Roots, of Bruce Burt
throwing the Mexican wrestling champion, of the reckless
feat of shooting the Roaring River with the dynamos upon
the rafts, of the day when Bruce Burt almost killed a man
who tried to burn out his power plant,—then you will
know what hair-raising adventures really are. The tale
is dramatic from the first great scene in that log cabin
in the mountains when Bruce Burt meets the murderous
onslaught of his insane partner.</p>
<h4 id="c43">A Man’s Hearth</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By ELEANOR M. INGRAM. Illustrated in color by Edmund Frederick. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>The key words to all Miss Ingram’s stories are “freshness,”
“speed” and “vigor.” “From the Car Behind”
was aptly termed “one continuous joy ride.” “A Man’s
Hearth” has all the vigor and go of the former story and
also a heart interest that gives a wider appeal. A young
New York millionaire, at odds with his family, finds his
solution in working for and loving the optimistic nurse-maid
who brought him from the depths of trouble and
made for him a hearthstone. There are fascinating side
issues but this is the essential story and it is an inspiring
one. It will be one of the big books of the winter.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_344">[344]</div>
<p class="tbcenter"><i>By the author of “MARCIA SCHUYLER” “LO! MICHAEL” “THE BEST MAN” etc.</i></p>
<h4 id="c44">The Obsession of Victoria Gracen</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By GRACE LIVINGSTON HILL LUTZ. Illustrated in color. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Every mother, every church-worker, every individual
who desires to bring added happiness into the lives of
others should read this book. A new novel by the author
of “Marcia Schuyler” is always a treat for those of us
who want clean, cheerful, uplifting fiction of the sort that
you can read with pleasure, recommend with sincerity and
remember with thankfulness. This book has the exact
touch desired. The story is of the effect that an orphan
boy has upon his lonely aunt, his Aunt Vic. Her obsession
is her love for the lad and his happiness. There is the
never-failing fund of fun and optimism with the high
religious purpose that appears in all of Mrs. Lutz’s excellent
stories.</p>
<h4 id="c45">Miranda</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By GRACE LIVINGSTON HILL LUTZ. Illustrated in color by E. L. Henry. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Nearly all of us fell in love with Miranda when she first
appeared in “Marcia Schuyler,” but those who missed
that happiness will now find her even more lovable in
this new book of which she is the central figure. From
cover to cover it is a tale of optimism, of courage, of
purpose. You lay it down with a revivified spirit, a
stronger heart for the struggle of this world, a clearer
hope for the next, and a determination to make yourself
and the people with whom you come in contact cleaner,
more spiritual, more reverent than ever before. It is
deeply religious in character: a novel that will bring the
great spiritual truths of God, character and attainment
straight to the heart of every reader.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_345">[345]</div>
<p class="tbcenter"><i>“GRIPPING” DETECTIVE TALES</i></p>
<h4 id="c46">The White Alley</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By CAROLYN WELLS. Frontispiece. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>FLEMING STONE, the ingenious American detective,
has become one of the best known characters in modern
fiction. He is the supreme wizard of crime detection in
the WHITE BIRCHES MYSTERY told in,—“THE WHITE ALLEY.”</p>
<p>The <i>Boston Transcript</i> says: “As an incomparable
solver of criminal enigmas, Stone is in a class by himself.
A tale which will grip the attention.” This is what
another says:—“Miss Wells’s suave and polished detective,
Fleming Stone, goes through the task set for him with
celerity and dispatch. Miss Wells’s characteristic humor
and cleverness mark the conversations.”—<i>New York Times.</i></p>
<h4 id="c47">The Woman in the Car</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By RICHARD MARSH. 12mo. $1.35 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Do you like a thrilling tale? If so, read this one and
we almost guarantee that you will not stir from your chair
until you turn the last page. As the clock struck midnight
on one of the most fashionable streets of London in the
Duchess of Ditchling’s handsome limousine, Arthur Towzer,
millionaire mining magnate, is found dead at the wheel,
horribly mangled. Yes, this is a tale during the reading
of which you will leave your chair only to turn up the
gas. When you are not shuddering, you are thinking;
your wits are balanced against the mind and system of
the famous Scotland Yard, the London detective headquarters.
The men or women who can solve the mystery
without reading the last few pages will deserve a reward,—they
should apply for a position upon the Pinkerton force.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_346">[346]</div>
<p class="tbcenter"><i>THE NOVEL THEY’RE ALL TALKING ABOUT</i></p>
<h4 id="c48">The Rose-Garden Husband</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By MARGARET WIDDEMER. Illustrated by Walter Biggs.
Small 12mo. $1.00 net.</p>
</blockquote><blockquote>
<p>“A Benevolent Friend just saved me from missing ‘The
Rose-Garden Husband.’ It is something for thanksgiving,
so I send thanks to you and the author. The
story is now cut out and stitched and in my collection
of ‘worth-while’ stories, in a portfolio that holds only
the choicest stories from many magazines. There is a
healthy tone in this that puts it above most of these
choice ones. And a smoothness of action, a reality of
motive and speech that comforts the soul of a veteran
reviewer.”</p>
<p><span class="jr"><i>From a Letter to the Publishers.</i></span></p>
</blockquote>
<p>Edition after edition of this novel has been sold, surely
you are not going to miss it. It is going the circle of family
after family,—every one likes it. The <i>New York Times</i>,
a paper that knows, calls it “a sparkling, rippling little
tale.” Order it <i>now</i>,—the cost is but one dollar.</p>
<h4 id="c49">The Diary of a Beauty</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By MOLLY ELLIOT SEAWELL. Illustrated by William Dorr
Steele. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>From the assistant postmistress in a small New England
village to the owner of a great mansion on Fifth Avenue
is the story told not as outsiders saw it, but as the beautiful
heroine experiences it,—an account so naive, so
deliciously cunning, so true, that the reader turns page
after page with an inner feeling of absolute satisfaction.</p>
<h4 id="c50">The Dusty Road</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By THERESE TYLER. Frontispiece by H. Weston Tayler. 12mo. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This is a remarkable story of depth and power,—the
struggle of Elizabeth Anderson to dear herself of her
sordid surroundings. Such books are not written every
day, nor every year, nor every ten years. It is stimulating
to a higher, truer life.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_347">[347]</div>
<p class="tbcenter">RECENT VALUABLE PUBLICATIONS</p>
<h4 id="c51">The Practical Book of Period Furniture</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>Treating of English Period Furniture, and American Furniture
of Colonial and Post-Colonial date, together with that of the
typical French Periods.</p>
<p>By HAROLD DONALDSON EBERLEIN and ABBOTT McCLURE.
With 225 illustrations in color, doubletone and line.
Octavo. Handsomely decorated cloth. In a box. $5.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This book places at the disposal of the general reader all
the information he may need in order to identify and classify
any piece of period furniture, whether it be an original,
or a reproduction. The authors have greatly increased
the value of the work by adding an illustrated chronological
key by means of which the reader can distinguish
the difference of detail between the various related
periods. One cannot fail to find the book absorbingly
interesting as well as most useful.</p>
<h4 id="c52">The Practical Book of Oriental Rugs</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By DR. G. GRIFFIN LEWIS, Author of “The Mystery of the
Oriental Rug.” New Edition, revised and enlarged. 20 full-page
illustrations in full color. 93 illustrations in doubletone.
70 designs in line. Folding chart of rug characteristics and a
map of the Orient. Octavo. Handsomely bound. In a box.
$5.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Have you ever wished to be able to judge, understand,
and appreciate the characteristics of those gems of Eastern
looms? This is the book that you have been waiting for,
as all that one needs to know about oriental rugs is presented
to the reader in a most engaging manner with illustrations
that almost belie description. “From cover to
cover it is packed with detailed information compactly
and conveniently arranged for ready reference. Many
people who are interested in the beautiful fabrics of which
the author treats have long wished for such a book as
this and will be grateful to G. Griffin Lewis for writing it.”—<i>The
Dial.</i></p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_348">[348]</div>
<h4 id="c53">The Practical Book of Outdoor Rose Growing</h4>
<div class="verse">
<p class="t0">NEW EDITION</p>
<p class="t0">REVISED AND ENLARGED</p>
</div>
<blockquote>
<p>By GEORGE C. THOMAS, JR. Elaborately illustrated with
96 perfect photographic reproductions in full color of all varieties
of roses and a few half tone plates. Octavo. Handsome cloth
binding, in a slip case. $4.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This work has caused a sensation among rose growers,
amateurs and professionals. In the most practical and
easily understood way the reader is told just how to propagate
roses by the three principal methods of cutting,
budding and grafting. There are a number of pages in
which the complete list of the best roses for our climate
with their characteristics are presented. One prominent
rose grower said that these pages were worth their weight
in gold to him. The official bulletin of the Garden Club
of America said:—“It is a book one must have.” It is
in fact in every sense practical, stimulating, and suggestive.</p>
<h4 id="c54">The Practical Book of Garden Architecture</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By PHEBE WESTCOTT HUMPHREYS. Frontispiece in color
and 125 illustrations from actual examples of garden architecture
and house surroundings. Octavo. In a box. $5.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>This beautiful volume has been prepared from the
standpoints of eminent practicability, the best taste, and
general usefulness for the owner developing his own property,—large
or small, for the owner employing a professional
garden architect, for the artist, amateur, student,
and garden lover. The author has the gift of inspiring
enthusiasm. Her plans are so practical, so artistic, so
beautiful, or so quaint and pleasing that one cannot resist
the appeal of the book, and one is inspired to make plans,
simple or elaborate, for stone and concrete work to embellish
the garden.</p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_349">[349]</div>
<h4 id="c55">Handsome Art Works of Joseph Pennell</h4>
<p>The reputation of the eminent artist is ever upon the
increase. His books are sought by all who wish their
libraries to contain the best in modern art. Here is your
opportunity to determine upon the purchase of three of
his most sought-after volumes.</p>
<h4 id="c56">Joseph Pennell’s Pictures of the Panama Canal</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>(Fifth printing) 28 reproductions of lithographs made on the
Isthmus of Panama between January and March, 1912, with
Mr. Pennell’s Introduction giving his experiences and impressions,
and a full description of each picture. Volume 7½ × 10
inches. Beautifully printed on dull finished paper. Lithograph
by Mr. Pennell on cover. $1.25 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>“Mr. Pennell continues in this publication the fine work
which has won for him so much deserved popularity. He
does not merely portray the technical side of the work, but
rather prefers the human element.”—<i>American Art News.</i></p>
<h4 id="c57">Our Philadelphia</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By ELIZABETH ROBINS PENNELL. Illustrated by Joseph
Pennell. Regular Edition. Containing 105 reproductions of
lithographs by Joseph Pennell. Quarto. 7½ × 10 inches. 552
pages. Handsomely bound in red buckram. Boxed. $7.50 net.</p>
<p>Autograph Edition. Limited to 289 copies (Now very scarce).
Contains 10 drawings, reproduced by a new lithograph process, in
addition to the illustrations that appear in the regular edition. Quarto.
552 pages. Specially bound in genuine English linen buckram in
City colors, in cloth covered box. $18.00 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>An intimate personal record in text and in picture of
the lives of the famous author and artist in a city with a
brilliant history, great beauty, immense wealth.</p>
<h4 id="c58">Life of James McNeill Whistler</h4>
<blockquote>
<p>By ELIZABETH ROBINS and JOSEPH PENNELL. Thoroughly
revised Fifth Edition of the authorized Life, with much
new matter added which was not available at the time of issue
of the elaborate 2 volume edition, now out of print. Fully
illustrated with 97 plates reproduced from Whistler’s works.
Crown octavo. 450 pages. Whistler binding, deckle edges.
$3.50 net. Three-quarter grain levant, $7.50 net.</p>
</blockquote>
<p>“In its present form and with the new illustrations,
some of which present to us works which are unfamiliar
to us, its popularity will be greatly increased.”—<i>International
Studio.</i></p>
<div class="pb" id="Page_350">[350]</div>
<h4 id="c59">The Stories All Children Love Series</h4>
<p>This set of books for children comprises some of the most
famous stories ever written. Each book has been a tried and
true friend in thousands of homes where there are boys and
girls. Fathers and mothers remembering their own delight
in the stories are finding that this handsome edition of old
favorites brings even more delight to their children. The
books have been carefully chosen, are beautifully illustrated,
have attractive lining papers, dainty head and tail
pieces, and the decorative bindings make them worthy of
a permanent place on the library shelves.</p>
<br/>Heidi By JOHANNA SPYRI. <span class="small">Translated by Elisabeth P. Stork</span>
<br/>The Cuckoo Clock <span class="small">By MRS. MOLESWORTH.</span>
<br/>The Swiss Family Robinson <span class="small">Edited by G. E. MITTON.</span>
<br/>The Princess and the Goblin <span class="small">By GEORGE MACDONALD.</span>
<br/>The Princess and Curdie <span class="small">By GEORGE MACDONALD.</span>
<br/>At the Back of the North Wind <span class="small">By GEORGE MACDONALD.</span>
<br/>A Dog of Flanders <span class="small">By “OUIDA.”</span>
<br/>Bimbi <span class="small">By “OUIDA.”</span>
<br/>Mopsa, the Fairy <span class="small">By JEAN INGELOW.</span>
<br/>The Chronicles of Fairyland<span class="small"> By FERGUS HUME.</span>
<br/>Hans Andersen’s Fairy Tales
<blockquote>
<p>Each large octavo, with from 8 to 12 colored illustrations.
Handsome cloth binding, decorated in gold and color.
$1.25 net, per volume.</p>
</blockquote>
<p> </p>
<p> </p>
<hr class="full" />
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />